#is it even about longest day anymore
Explore tagged Tumblr posts
Text
I really don't like being so damn spiteful and miserable at the moment but it hurts to have one of my few moments of respite from the grinding hell of being chronically ill turn into a constant battle of "Oh boy I wonder when the next spot of misogyny will crop up."
I don't know man, maybe I've just become too mean. It could just be that I'm a miserable old shit who deserves to rot away in chronically ill squalor and drown in his own filth, but who bloody knows anymore.
#tw vent#is it even about longest day anymore#idfk man#but the prospect of waking up and having to read this tripe is getting to me#i'm a spiteful useless old fuck who's never contributed anything to society beyond a stupid fucking blog#what the fuck am i doing with my life where i'm having to spend it like this#fucking abominable book series#fucking abominable tv series#fucking abominable everything#i'm fed up
4 notes
¡
View notes
Text
jandy nelson, i'll give you the sun | jean anouilh tr, by lewis galantière | @soulinkpoetry | trista mateer, the dogs i have kissed | the bible
#NO SLEEP OF THE INNOCENT. NOT FOR YOU: character study.#the concept of having a complicated relationship with one's sibling.#because ryuuji was the second born and thus the responsibility of taking care of him was given to misao most of the time she found herself-#being jealous of him sometimes. and misao felt very guilty because of this but she just wanted to be a kid for a moment. so sometimes she-#would imagine that she was ryu instead of herself and their roles were reversed because misao would just get so overwhelmed with things-#that this was the only way she could cope with it at times. which is sad in every sense of the word but misao knew that it wasn't ryu's-#fault at all that thing's were this way. it wasn't anyone's fault really but it was so much easier to place the blame on him subconsciously#sometimes because the alternative was blaming herself for not being strong enough to be both a caretaker and a child at the same time.#and that was perhaps even harder for her to think about because misao has always strived to be perfect. and i mean this in everything-#she does. she wants to be the 'perfect psychotherapist' the 'perfect lover' the 'perfect friend' and it is a LOT of pressure to be honest-#to be putting on yourself especially when you are not fully equipped to open yourself up to people about how you are struggling because-#you've dealt with things on your own all your life. but yeah. misao might've felt resentment towards ryuuji even though it was misplaced-#though she also felt a great deal of platonic love towards him and even if the whole world were against him then she'd still be on his side#but misao has been out of contact with him for the longest time and doesn't even know if he is alive anymore. and she is kind of scared-#to inquire someone to find out for her like a private investigator or something. because i think misao would not be able to take both her-#mom and her half-brother dying because at the end of the day ryuuji is her last remaining family member. and he understood her-#in ways that even she couldn't understand herself.
20 notes
¡
View notes
Text
When it comes to hygiene tasks and self care with disability and chronic illness, its pretty much a constant case of: don't let perfect be the enemy of the good.
Basically: it's better to do something, than to do nothing at all.
TLDR: Just because you can't do something "properly" doesn't mean you shouldn't do it at all. Do it half-way. Do it shitty. Do it barely. Do it on a technicality. But do what you can. Just try, because doing something will help you.
If you don't have the energy to scrub your body with a sponge, just rub soap over your skin with your hands.
If you don't have the energy to wash your whole body with soap, just hit the places where sweat accumulates, or where you're smelliest.
If you don't have the energy to wash with soap AT ALL, just sitting in water is better than nothing. It will wash away dirt and oils.
If you can't bathe or shower at all, a warm wash cloth is your new best friend. If that's too much, then try bath wipes. They're a bit bigger than regular wet wipes, and a bit more heavy duty. They're designed to help keep bed ridden patients clean in hospitals.
If you don't have the energy to dry yourself after a bath or a shower, just put on a bathrobe and get into bed. If you don't have the energy to get dressed afterwards, just don't. It can wait until you can.
If you don't have energy to brush your teeth for two minutes, honestly, just a cursory scrub is better than not doing anything.
If you can't brush your teeth twice a day, brush in the evenings. It will help take away the build up of food from the day.
If you don't have the energy to brush AT ALL, honestly, just take a cloth and wipe the plaque off your teeth. Rinse with mouth wash after if you'd like. Something is always better than nothing.
If you can't floss twice a day. Try once. If that's too much, try a few times a week. If that's too much, try setting aside a day once a week as a goal. If you can't keep a schedule, do it when you're able to. Hell, I keep some floss next to my bed so that if I forget and don't have the energy to go get it, I can just reach over.
If you can't iron your clothes, don't bother. Wrinkles are fine. Wear jumpers over wrinkly t-shirts. No one will know, and honestly, most people won't even care. If it's really wrinkly and it's A Big Deal And It Needs To Be Ironed, here's my life hack. Step 1: take a spray bottle, and spritz the item of clothing (while you're wearing it is easiest) until it's lightly damp. Step 2: use a hair-dryer on the clothes until they're dry. It gets rid of creases like nobody's business, it's easier than lugging out the iron and ironing board, and you get to have nice toasty warm clothes afterwards.
If you can't fold your clothes, try just hanging them up. It's less commitment. It's quicker to do. Granted, you need to have the space in order to do this, but it is also good at helping you downsize, and lets you visualise exactly what you have.
If you can't put your clothes away, invest in a couple of laundry baskets, and then just keep your clean clothes in the baskets. You can then separate washed clothes into underwear, pants, and shirts baskets. You can just leave them like that. I'm giving you permission to never fold your laundry again if you can't. Just leave it unfolded. Who's going to care? Something is better than nothing. If you can, try to put those baskets into your closet so that you can keep the clutter out of sight, and give yourself a more restful environment.
If you can't separate your clothing out into different categories and wash them "properly" (whites, warm tones, cool tones, darks, delicates / switching between hot & cold washes / paying attention to laundry instructions on the label) then just don't worry about it. If you cold wash your clothes, colours won't bleed. Maybe gradually over the course of dozens of washes there'll be some changes in hue, but it's really not as high stakes as the One Red Sock In The Whites Turns Them Pink trope makes it out to be.
I've pretty much come to the point in my life where if a piece of clothing can't survive the washer and dryer, then it's just not meant to be. I colour separate my clothes, and if I have the energy/remember I'll take my bras and jumpers out of the washing machine to drip dry. But otherwise, I leave it to the universe.
If you can't separate out your recycling, then don't. If you have a large amount of rubbish you need to get rid of but the idea of separating it out properly is stopping you from doing so, then just don't worry about it. I know it's not ideal, but if you have garbage in your room/house and you need to get rid of it, please just get rid of it. Don't let the problem get bigger and harder to deal with. Don't let "doing something properly" get in the way of keeping your living spaces clean. Please. Give yourself understanding.
If you can't wash your dishes, get paper plates. Obviously, it's not ideal, but it is better that you eat food than skipping meals. It is better that you have a clean kitchen, rather than having dishes piling up and making it harder to look after yourself.
If you can't prepare meals for yourself keep making the tasks easier and easier. If you can't do recipes, then simplify. Use pasta sauce from the jar instead of making it. Eat canned soup. Buy food you can just stick in the oven. If you eat fish fingers and microwave veggies every night, it's better than not eating anything at all. It's better than having to fork out money on take-out. If you need ready-made meals, then get them. If you're literally just eating a raw cauliflower for dinner; 1) I see you, 2) me too, sis, 3) something is better than nothing.
These are the basic things you need to do every day to function as a person. They are your activities of daily living. Brushing your teeth. Bathing or showering. Using the bathroom. Getting dressed. Eating. Drinking. Sleeping. Keeping your environment clean. You don't need to do these things perfectly, but they need to happen in order for you to have a decent quality of life.
And it breaks my heart, because I know that so many disabled people can't do these things every day. I'm not saying this to guilt or judge, I'm saying that these are basic needs; you deserve these things. These things bring dignity. If a disabled person is unable to do these things, it diminishes their quality of life. It robs them of dignity.
If you need help to do these things, Its okay to ask for help. It's okay to need help. But if you can't get that help and you have to do these things by yourself -- or you just plain want to be independent and do it without help-- then don't hold yourself to standards you can't meet.
Don't let perfect be the enemy of the good. Doing something is always better than doing nothing. Even if it's not perfect. Even if it's not done well. Do what you can.
#lord knows that im still trying to pull myself out of the muck and into independence and dignity#i had to set a rule for myself that i need to wear clean clothes every day. and that i need to wear pyjamas to bed#that one's been hard. sometimes I dont have the energy to do it and i just stay in the same clothes for two days at a time#or i go to sleep in what i was wearing. but when i do follow that rule my quality of life is drastically better#not feeling dirty or gross goes a long way to making you feel more like a person#i also made a rule that im not allowing myself to look frumpy outside anymore. that means clothes that look nice#no more trackies and pj pants and all that stuff. i basically lived in perpetual pyjamas for four years and im over it#i still dress comfortably but the important thing is that i dress. i look put together. i wear things that make me happy#(and i didnt need to buy anything to do so. i just needed to start taking better care of myself)#and i stopped letting perfect be the enemy of the good. i started doing things shitty rather than not doing it at all#and the more i keep pushing with my ADLs the better i feel#what helps is now i dont have to contend with stairs and that has made a dramatic change to what im able to accomplish#ive also finally built up enough strength in my body that im able to go to the shops by myself. so i can buy things to make easy meals#and mum doesnt mind if i just put some things in the oven or air fryer for us for dinner.#i still cant really cook. i felt bad about that for the longest time. i didnt even try bc i knew what id make would be disappointing#or it wouldnt be up to the standards of what everyone else was making. i was so sick of feeling like a let down all the time.#now i just make what i can and my mum doesnt complain bc shes in the same boat.#and yeah. having help would be nice. it would mean id be able to do more than what i can do by myself.#and its great to see how far ive come. but im not a burden. and when i have the accommodations i need i can do a lot more#i do something rather than nothing and my life has dramatically changed since then. ive just gotten better and better.#chronic illness#disability#chronic pain#spoonie#one things for certain and thats that im never going to let myself rely on anyone else ever again.#i never want to be on the other side of that ever again. I don't want to be anyone's burden. i dont want that hanging over me#i do things by myself or i dont do them at all. and god fucking willing i'll never go back to needing as much help as i used to#i really didnt realise just how much of an obstacle living with stairs was in my life. it was the biggest barrier against everything#stairs stopped me from being independent. if i couldnt traverse them i just didnt go anywhere. my world shrank so much#and not having the proper wheelchair shrinks my world even more. im stronger than i used to be but im still severely limited in where i go
7 notes
¡
View notes
Text
Tumblr, I am disappoint. A couple of years ago a sizeable chunk of you history nerds were nuts for The Longest Day in Chang'an and now, when I finally managed to finish it (it was AWESOME; one of the best shows I've ever seen, full stop) I come online and find
A) WHY DID NOBODY WARN ME ABOUT GENERAL GAN SHOUCHENG and
B) WHERE IS ALL THE THIRSTY GENERAL GAN CONTENT?! Now, I know that cdrama fandom is pretty chaste and that in much of Asia, perving is something you keep private and I can respect that. Ok. Cultural differences, I'm cool with that. I'll keep the lewdz to my Pillowfort.
But still! Look at him! A hot baddie with stupendous amounts of guyliner and a carefully coiffed Beard of Evil, he gets a scene like this, and there's no chaste and ladylike swooning or oohing or aahing, even?!?!
#grouse has a side crush#only about 10% of what i feel for connie bc it's a human and not a god i'm crushing on here#but it's still pretty ooooh#it's like someone put fadl and lau in a blender#and served me with kinda the same level of angry horn i have for baz#that kind of situation#i'm not even tagging this appropriately bc i fear i'll get yelled at by someone bc this is tumblr#and i'm keeping the pervy tags to pillowfort#but#uh#hi#i need help#so tell me if there's content#i'm fine with even gen fic if there's fic#the actor keeps changing his name too so this isn't making things any easier#i know he got into trouble some 10+ years ago or whatever but i understand dude reformed and made a comeback#but when china cancels you they want you to stay cancelled#which hardly motivates anyone to reform now does it?#so idk if this guy's even working anymore#also tan qi is so badass i can't even ship her with him#i mean normally i'm all about throwing a goodie to be glomped by the baddie and making them enjoy it despite themselves#but it's be too ooc for her#having said that if it exists in well-written form i may consider reading it#otherwise i want him back in s2 thanks#just so tan qi can rip his eyes out#as nice as his eyes look with all that guyliner#oh god i need to come up with a lady oc to pair him with bc he's too hot to leave without#so maybe lin jiu lang has a hot bored wife and she sees the handsome general pacing the courtyard#like an angry tiger ready to pounce#the longest day in chang'an
2 notes
¡
View notes
Text
.
#vent#i dont think im in love with my boyfriend anymore#i still love him but i dont think its in the same way anymore#i feel hes more of a brother to me now#ive been feeling this for a few days and im just so scared#i dont know how to make such a change after 5 years#and i have to make sure this is how i really feel because i cant throw that all away#part of me wants to try and make him break up with me so i dont have to do it but i cant do that to him#i dont want him to hate me i want him in my life even if we're not together anymore#hes so important to me that i can't imagine life without him in it#im so scared because i dont want to hurt him but at the same time i cant lead him on and make him believe i still love him that way#i just dont know what to do#this is the longest and most serious relationship ive had in my life#we went through so much together in the past#ive known being with him through all my early 20s#its so hard to imagine not being with him#i have to figure out how i feel but its painful even to think about m#ill figure it out like i always do
2 notes
¡
View notes
Text
BUY ME PRESENTS | draco malfoy
summary; draco loves you, and you love him. he just needs a little push to make things official. OR, draco malfoy fighting for his life when he realises just how much everyone wants his girl.
word count; 8928
notes; this is based on christmas eve, but I'm posted a couple days later! this fic puts us half way through our slytherin boy holidays! I'm not sure how the one I expected to be the shortest became the longest one so far. like, seriously, I know I keep saying this but wtf? why can't I write a short fic?
Dinner had already been served by the time you made it to the Grand Hall, the smells of roasted meats and seasoned potatoes filling the air, your mouth watering as you navigated between the throngs of people. Your seat had been saved, of course. A spot on the bench between Draco and Daphne, and as you neared, your friends noticed, smiles rising and waves in your direction.Â
Sinking into your seat, you pressed a kiss to the cheek of the blond boy beside you, his face tipping up to receive it and lips twisting into a smile, attention moving to you as you sat.Â
âGood day?â
âBetter now that itâs over.â You smiled, a chuckle falling from him, and his hand came to rest upon your thigh, squeezing comfortingly while you helped yourself to a plate of whatever food was left. âWhat are we talking about, what did I miss?â
âNot much. Just Theo telling us all about Christmas in Italy.â Mattheo rolled his eyes, as though you all hadn't heard this exact same speech since that very first Christmas youâd become friends. Most of the group seemed to have simply tuned it out, laughing and nodding at the correct times as they whispered their own conversations.Â
A swipe of a thumb over your thigh as you finished filling your plate with food, and you shifted your attention to Draco. âSo, what are your Christmas plans, Dray?â
Shuffling a little bit closer now that your plate was full, his arm moved to lay across your shoulders instead, letting you snuggle up into his side. âOh, you know, the usual.âÂ
He smiled, and your world seemed to get a little bit brighter, his lips brushing your hairline as he left a barely-present kiss there.Â
âTypical Malfoy-family Christmas. I get to do the tour with my parents, visiting every other rich-arsehole couple they know. Christmas Eve party. The pleasure of my fatherâs annual âyouâre growing up now, son, itâs time to get serious about the worldâ over the dinner table on Christmas Day. Open some presents I donât want, on a schedule I donât like.â He sighed, clearly used to it by now, but it didnât make it sound any less awful.
âWell,â You smile, nudging him playfully with your elbow. âMaybe we could write to one another, or even get a little visit in?âÂ
The hope in your voice was evident, and Pansy gave you an encouraging smile across the table. Youâd been meaning to ask Draco this question for weeks now, and your last chance had been fast approaching. Since the summer, you and Draco had been hooking up. It was no secret among your friends, or even the students; your affections for one another were hardly contained, but it wasn't official.Â
You wanted the labels, the security, and the safety of knowing that he was yours and you were his, and nobody else could come between you. You wanted to be introduced to his parents, be his date at events, to have him be proud to call you his girl. But Draco had been hesitant, avoiding every conversation that might inch into the âso, what are we?â territory, keeping a safe distance from any kind of real commitment.Â
It wasnât enough for you anymore, not by a long shot, but trying to talk to Draco about it only ended up with him shutting it down, or skilfully diverting the conversation and you were growing tired of his games.Â
Draco only made a vague noise, neither an agreement nor disagreement, and looked away from you as he picked up his drink to take a sip. âI donât know⌠maybe. I can get pretty busy over the holidays, Iâd hate to let you down.â
Another skill of his, making it seem like cancelling or delaying or not doing something at all was your idea. He was clearly hoping youâd brush it off, and tell him not to worry about it, but instead, you kept quiet. Not giving him the satisfaction of any easy win, this time.Â
Pansy caught your eye across the table, shaking her head disapprovingly, and shooting a glare at an oblivious Draco. She had been your confidant these last few months, every update and development in your situationship, sheâd been informed of. Every decision, sheâd been a part of. She was practically as invested as you were, at this point, and she certainly did not approve of his nonchalant behaviour either.Â
âSpeaking of parties,â Mattheo cut Theo off, clearly having had enough of the annual rehashing of âthat one Christmas when Theo was eightâ for today, and changing the subject, âWhoâs got their dates sorted for the Malfoy Christmas Eve Ball, and whoâs daring to go solo and have Narcissa set them up like a matchmaker all night long?â
Chuckles rang out among the group, and Pansy smiled, leaning into Blaiseâs side with a love-struck grin. âI think weâre safe this year.â
âIâm going solo, but, I did tell Aunty Cissa that I have my eye on a girl in one of my classes, and Iâm seeing how it plays out. So, sheâs not setting me up anytime soon, since she believes Iâm already onto someone.â Enzo smirked, and Blaise congratulated him for his clever tactics.Â
You smirked through your mouthful of food, listening to Mattheo explain his complex excuse, to Reggie mournfully spill the story of how heâs already been set up by his parents witha âpotential bride to meetâ, and how he hopes she doesnât show up. You laugh with the others as Tom simply raises an eyebrow, knowing that even Narcissa doesnât attempt to set him up anymore, lest he scare away any more of her friendsâ daughters. Theo, ever the player he is, is looking forward to dancing with every single lady he can find, and taking his pick at the end of the night.
âI suppose nobody needs to ask Draco who his date will be.â Mattheo grins, wiggling his brows at the pair of you as you smile, leaning a little further into the man at your side.Â
âHey, who knows?â He chortles, and your eyes narrow a little, âIâve had plenty of offers. I havenât made up my mind yet.â
âOooh.â Enzoâs eyes went wide, the other boys joining in, and Pansy fixed him with a glare. Daphne leaned around you with her jaw dropped at his statement, and you sat up from his embrace, lips pressed flat and a brow raised.Â
The boys snickered, âheâs in shitâ and âsomeoneâs in the doghouseâ, but he lived for the spotlight, a drama queen at heart, and he smirked down at you.Â
âOh, câmon. Donât look at me like that, babe.â The playful nickname was one he only ever used when joking around. When he was sincere, he was much more romantic; darling, sweetheart, beautiful. âWhat am I supposed to say? âHi mum, hello father, meet the girl Iâm skipping class to shag! Thanks for paying my tuition!â, I donât think so.â
The boys all laughed, Daphne scoffed in sync with her sister behind you, and Pansy looked like sheâd lunge across the table at any moment, if it wasnât for her chastising Blaise for laughing, instead. âYou and Draco can share that couch youâll both be sleeping on tonightâ, sheâd said. âSee how funny you think it is thenâ.
The words stung as he spoke them, dismantling your relationship down to the bare minimum; to sex and physical connection and nothing else. Like the nights spent talking until the sun came up were nothing, the times youâd held him while he cried, or washed him in the bath when he was so exhausted he could barely keep his eyes open. Like he didnât rub your stomach for hours every month when you got cramps, or had a stash of your favourite snacks in his bedside table for whenever you came over.Â
You knew that Draco Malfoy lived you, just as much as you loved him. It was evident in everything he did, every kiss and every word. But, he needed a little push.
âI suppose youâre right,â You sigh lightly, giggling along with the laughing boys around the table. âIâm not so sure Lucius wouldn't burst a blood vessel then and there.â
âExactly.â Draco hummed, and you glanced back to Pansy. She was shocked, only for a second, before taking in the subtle signs of mischief on your face. Her own smirk stretched out in return, and her gaze flickered once to Draco, before back to you.Â
A new game was afoot, and Draco wasnât going to stand a chance.
Slipping your coat from your shoulders, the annual Malfoy Christmas Eve Ball was well underway. Your parents had disappeared into the crowds before youâd even stepped out of the carriage, uncaring of where you were as long as you werenât causing trouble. They were here to mingle with the other importants, and you were just here to learn the ropes of proper socialising.
The garment was taken from you, your small bag clutched in hand as a ticket was given to you for it, and you brushed down the front of your dress delicately. Pearls moved under your touch, beading along the bodice flat and perfected, and you felt your confidence rise as you looked at yourself once more in the reflection of a dark window. Adjusting the small lace gloves on each hand, you took a step towards the dining room.Â
Elegant music was playing from a live band up on a stage, the room was decorated this year to look like a winter escape. Pale and frosty, like a palace of ice, twinkling lights and glittering decor, crisp white tablecloths and ice sculptures. A layer of goosebumps travelled along your skin at the sight of it all, despite the warming charms that took place for the guests.Â
Scanning the room, you quickly found your table. The designated kids table, despite you all being legal adults and far beyond such status. Youâd all be the babies of the ball until the new generation emerged, no doubt. Moving through the bodies and crowds of people politely, Theo was the first to glance up and spot you, his mouth falling open, and a rush of confidence took over as he raised two fingers to his lips and whistled.Â
The sound caught the attention of the othersâ chatter fading to quiet as they all turned to look for the object of his cat-calling, Enzoâs eyes widened, Pansy cheered loudly, and even Mattheo looked momentarily speechless. Youâd had the same reaction when youâd seen yourself in the dress too, your stylist had truly outdone herself for this one.Â
You looked flawless, and you looked expensive, and utterly elegant. Doing a little spin as you approached, a smile broke free on your lips as you stopped before the chair with your name card before it.Â
âMerlin, babe,â Pansy started, drawing your attention straight her her, âYouâve got every eye on you tonight. If I was single, Iâd be all over you.âÂ
She winked when you laughed, and Blaise rolled his eyes but smiled, leaning in to kiss her cheek affectionately.Â
âPretty necklace,â She commented, and your fingers rose to the pretty string of pearls and diamonds that you had.Â
âIt was a gift,â You simply hummed, tugging at your gloves. Glancing at the others, you gave each a polite smile, eyes lingering on Draco as he stared. In any other style, this dress would be scandalous for an event like this. A low neckline, spaghetti straps, no sleeves. Tight and fitted to every curve of your body, and yet the classic designs and vintage nature elevated it to the kind of class Audrey Hepburn would be proud of.Â
He looked just as good, a dark suit, a fresh white shirt, a champagne-coloured tie that made the colour of his eyes and his hair stand out and your mouth dried out a little. Silver rings adorned his fingers, the Malfoy signet standing out, clenched so tightly around his whiskey glass that his knuckles were almost white.Â
Youâd worn soft, golden makeup effects today, a dusting of glitter along your cheekbones and eyelids, a shade of pink on your cheeks and lips that you knew was his weakness.Â
âSomeone really wanted your attention with that, huh?â Your best friend teased, and your eyes snapped away from Draco, back to her.Â
âI suppose so,â You muse, hand coming up to touch one of the beads on your ear, âSince they also got me this lovely pair of matching earrings.â
Pansy made a dramatic show of admiring them, and Blaise gave a funny look, glancing at the jewellery, and then back at Draco, who was frowning. Before you could reach for your chair after placing your clutch down, Enzo was shooting to his feet from beside you, tugging out the chair for you.Â
Draco scoffed as you gave him a thank you, settling into your seat, and he glared at the man beside you. Enzo didnât flinch, however, smirking at Draco as he spoke;
âWhat? Itâs called being a gentleman, cousin.â
Crossing your leg delicately, youâd hardly even removed your gloves, before a tray was coming down by your side, and a young waiter with a dazzling smile was looking right at you.Â
âChampagne, maâam?â Not a planned pawn in your game, but a welcome addition, you smiled sweetly in return.Â
âOh, Iâd love some. Thank you.â Taking the single glass by the stem, you lifted it from the tray and the manâs smile stretched wider as you sipped the bubbly, holding his eye.Â
âOf course, miss. If you need anything, anything at all, Iâll be at the bar, happy to serve.â His flirting was heavy enough that normally youâd want to roll your eyes, but tonight, you suppressed that urge, playing into it as you bat your lashes.Â
âIâll be sure to keep that in mind. Thank you.â
He took the dismissal, staring appreciatively as he walked away, another look over his shoulder to you as you watched him go.Â
âStop eye-fucking the help.â Draco snapped, and your focus moved to him slowly, just to find his icy glare on you. He didnât scare you, though, all that mean bravado, but you knew what was underneath.Â
âI was doing no such thing.â You tut, placing down your drink. âDonât be jealous, Dray. You look even better in that suit. If you want compliments, just ask. No need to be mean.â
He seemed rather placated by this, his ego settling down, even if the others did laugh at him.
The conversation seemed to continue around you as you settled in, avoiding Dracoâs heated stare and sipping at your champagne. The rush of warming alcohol through your veins settled every dancing nerve, and gave you the calm confidence to do what you had planned. Sitting forwards, just enough, you angled your body so that Draco might have the perfect view over your cleavage as you feigned interest in the chatter around you.Â
He took the bait, his gaze falling right where you wanted it, the gems of your necklace dangling just over the swell of your breasts, and he licked his lower lip, pulling it between his teeth.
Raising your hands and catching the swinging gem, you toyed with it carefully, letting it run over your fingers. Time melted away as Dracoâs gaze flicked between your nimble touch, your lips, and your chest, shuffling in his seat every so often, and gulping at the bubbly in his glass.Â
He was on his third refill by the time food started to be taken around, and you took pity on him momentarily, sitting back in your chair and angling away from him, ready to receive your first course.Â
As the starters came around, you turned to thank your waiter, surprised to see it was the same man from the bar who had brought you your champagne. Youâd given him little thought since heâd walked away, and youâd never spotted him again, but perhaps that was exactly why he was delivering your food now, as he beamed at you and set down the plate.Â
Men did love a little attention, after all.Â
Reaching for the bottle of champagne cooling in the centre of the table, the waiter never looked away from you as he refilled your glass without being asked. Draco finally seemed to notice as he finished adjusting his napkin, gaze narrowing on the man serving you. âYouâve got to be kidding meâŚâ He muttered.
You pretended to take no notice, smiling at the man and waving your fingers flirtily as he walked away.
âIâm going to get another drink at the bar,â He announced, leaving without his glass and without asking if anyone else wanted one. You knew where he was truly going, if the lock of his jaw and the stamp in his step were any indication. You doubted youâd be seeing that waiter again.
As you poked at your food, Pansy excused herself too, only a few bites into her meal before she disappeared with a wicked grin and no explanation to anyone. Enzo just chuckled beside you, glancing around the room like he was watching all the cogs of a machine in motion, before turning his gaze on you. âYou do look lovely tonight, do you know that?â
âOf course I do. I spent days on end trying on dress after dress to find this.â You sighed, admiring the gorgeous piece of art on your body as you set your cutlery down.Â
âAnd is it serving the purpose you need it to?â He teased, voice knowing, and you nodded. Flicking your gaze over the patrons and guests in the room, you searched for Draco, finding him talking politely to one of his motherâs friends at the bar.Â
âIt is, I think.â
âLetâs hope it stays that way.â He whispered, your focus still on the man who truly held your heart, who was making his polite excuse and walking way, back towards you all. His gaze locked on yours, only for a second, before Pansy was calling your name and drawing your focus elsewhere.Â
When you looked up to her, she was grinning, a man by her side. âThis is Elliot, heâs been wanting to meet you for some time. I promised him Iâd introduce you both tonight.â
You offered the best smile you could as his cheeks reddened, and Pansy merely patted him on the shoulder, slinking away as you offered your hand to him. âLovely to meet you, Elliot.â
âYou too. As embarrassing as that introduction was, itâs true. I have wanted to meet you for some time.â He had a kind smile and pretty eyes, and he seemed far too nice to be dragged into your game tonight, but he seemed almost like a willing participant, and you werenât one to look a gift horse in the mouth. As Draco took his seat, Elliot continued, âPansy has told me so much about you. You know, if youâre free one day before you go back to that fancy boarding school of yours, Iâd love to take you out.â
âYeah? What have you got in mind?â You smile, twisting a little more to face him, and your encouragement only brightens his expression as Dracoâs darkens in your peripheral.
âA night in London, perhaps. We could get dinner, and see the opera?â
âShe doesnât like the opera.â Draco sneered, openly staring at Elliot with enough contempt to scare away lesser men. Elliot tugged at his collar, glancing at Draco, and then back to you as you tried to hide your shock at his behaviour.
âThe theatre, then?â
Draco looked ready to snap again, and before he could, you nodded, sparing your unwilling partner. âThat sounds wonderful, Iâll see what my schedule says. Iâll get in touch with you through Pansy if I can find the time, is that okay?â
âPerfect.â He smiled, sneaking another wary glance at Draco who was not backing down from glaring at him unflinchingly, but Elliot shook it off, bravely. âIt was a pleasure to meet you, truly.â
âAnd you, Elliot.â
Soon after he left, the plates were being cleared. You tried not to smirk as a different waiter, and one who very pointedly did not so much as even catch your gaze, cleared your dishes away at record speed.Â
You knew that Draco had something, everything, to do with that. He was jealous by nature, a spoilt single child who did not like to share his favourite toys, and that is exactly what you were betting on tonight.
You stood, taking a lap around the room with Pansy to settle your food before the next course, and to get another drink. She took the opportunity to fill you in on how her first Christmas event with Blaiseâs family had gone, and when you returned, you made sure to surreptitiously place yourself behind Dracoâs chair.Â
You placed a hand on his shoulder, a friendly gesture, squeezing and rubbing enough that your thumb swept over his collar and across his neck. His pulse jumped under your touch, and he tipped his head closer, into your touch.Â
As he did so, your heart leapt in your chest. To others, it might look like a friendly gesture but to you, it meant so much more. You were tempted to cave then and there, to live with this being enough, to settle, but you couldn't. You didnât want this to be it, you wanted to follow this by leaning down to kiss him, to have him smile against your lips in public the way he did when you were alone.Â
To arrive at these events together, arms linked, and to stumble out tiredly together too. To sit by him, his hand on your thigh, to rest your head on his shoulder, to kiss him on the dance floor. The thought was enough to push you through.Â
He twisted his head, to kiss your hand like he often did when you did this. Carefully, you slipped your hand away just in time, knuckles brushing across the nape of his neck as you stepped away, and back to your seat.Â
His sights moved to you, but like a saving grace, the servers began to appear with more dishes, and dinner soon distracted you all. A delicious serving of salmon and potatoes, and the hall fell quiet enough for you to hear the beautiful music playing when chatter fell low.Â
Low conversation, drinks refilled, and that perfect mood set across the room, as people took to the tables and quieted down. Your favourite part of the night, usually. Good food, your friends, and a chance to catch up without the usual weight of it all sitting on you. Regulus was talking, telling the rare story that had him caught up in a long conversation where he usually just observed quietly, but your attention was fixed on your lover.Â
Until, Theo spoke up.Â
âOh, merda,â He muttered across Reggieâsâ story, his gaze cutting to you alarmingly quickly. âI forgot to tell you.â
âTell me what?â Your heart skipped a beat, a flash of panic.
âMy cousin flew in last minute for the party, and he wants to speak to you.â Theoâs words soothed your panic, and you offered him a flat look for the dramatic way heâd put it. Taking a sip from your glass, you raised a brow.
âWhen?â
âNow.â He confirmed, sights lifting to sit just behind you, and before you could even turn, a chair was being pulled up beside your own from another table. Turning your head to the owner, a smile burst across your face at the man sitting before you.Â
âDario!â Your arms were around his neck before you could stop yourself, and he was chuckling as he bundled you into an equally enthusiastic hug. He chuckled lightly, pulling back only far enough to press a friendly kiss to your cheek, and you cupped his face as you parted from him. âYouâre growing a beard!â
âMy mother hates it.â He chuckled, rubbing a hand over it. As you twisted a little more towards him, he reached down, practically manhandling you as he reached for the edge of your seat by your legs, tugging it sideways to face him. You squealed as the chair jolted, screeching on the floor, tugging you closer as he leaned in. âSei incantevole.â
âAre you charming me in Italian?â You smirk, a boyish smile on his face as he lounged back in his seat. âWhat are you doing here, anyway? Theo said none of you were flying in this year! I thought you couldn't make it.â
âI couldn't,â He sighed, shrugging, âBut, then I heard that you would be here, without a date, and I knew I just had to make it. So, here I am, la mia bella donna. You think a short flight from Italy would stop me rushing over here to you?â
Your giggle was against your control. Even if he was more like family than a romantic interest, the way his accent twisted around coyly spoken words, was enough to bring a blush to even the most unreceptive womanâs face. âCut it out, you flirt.â
âYouâll save me a dance later, right?â
âWeâll see.â He rose his brow, and you lifted your glass, taking a sip of bubbly to hide your smile, leaving him hanging. âDepends on how much more of your cheesy flirting I can endure.â
âYou mean my wonderful Italian charm?â He teased, pinching one of your cheeks, and deepening the flush he had already created. âDonât think I donât see the way I make you blush.
You could only scoff, mouth dry as you tried to think of a retort, and you didnât miss Theo muttering in Italian behind you, curse words youâd picked up on tumbling from his mouth.Â
âPerhaps this can convince you,â Dario reaches for his inner pocket, producing a small, slim box. An excited squeak breaks from you as he hands it over, your fingers brushing the elegant leather, an Italian name embossed across the front. âOpen it later, alright?â
You could only nod, admiring it happily, before slipping the box safely inside of your clutch. He took your hand, kissing your knuckles as he stood. A final wink as he offered you hid charming goodbyes, and a farewell to the rest of the table, before returning his borrowed chair to where he had taken it from.Â
You watched as your friend left, disappearing into the crowd, no doubt to mingle and socialise as he had always been so good at, before you swung back around in your chair.Â
âHe taught you everything you know, huh, Nott?â
Theo only shrugged, a cheeky grin on his face. âWhat can I say, tesoro? We Nott men just have charm. Weâll woo your panties right off.â He winked, the cockiness not lasting long as Draco swung at him, a fist landing roughly on his arm as the Malfoy heir scowled, glaring at his best friend.Â
âCut it out.â He growled the words through gritted teeth, and your hand shot up, rubbing at your lip to hide your grin as Draco made no effort to hide his own emotions. Theo only laughed, rubbing at the patch on his arm heâd taken the hit.
Dessert was served, a beautiful display of ice cream and winter berries that almost looked too good to eat. The key word being almost. You hadn't been able to resist, however, and the first small groan youâd let out as the sugar hit your tongue had Dracoâs gaze snapping straight to you. I did not leave, once, after.Â
Instead, he watched, through a dark gaze, every curl of your lips around the spoon, every swipe of your tongue to catch the juice of burst berries. If youâd put on a little extra show, just for him, nobody else had to know.Â
It was like he was staring right into your soul, so intense, even after the meal was long since finished. Finally, you indulged him once again, turning to look at him and raising a brow. âYes, Draco?â
âYou look beautiful tonight, I am simply admiring.â He let his gaze move across you slowly, making his admiration apparent, and his gaze lingered a fraction of a second longer on your neck. He stared at you with open adoration, the kind of look that told you exactly how he felt, even if he was fighting it, but he was close to breaking. He was close to losing this game he didnât know he was playing. Then, his gaze flickered over your shoulder, sweet observation morphing. His brows drew together, his open hand slamming down on the table hard enough to make the glass rattle. âOh, fucking hellâŚâ
Mattheo erupted with sudden laughter, loud and brash, and there was a tap on your shoulder before you could even ask him what had him in such hysterics. A young man you did not know, perhaps a few years younger than you, and glanced around the table to see which of your friends had put this one together. Each seemed to have caught on in their own time, and had a hand in adding to the fun, to watch Draco suffer more, but none of them were laying any claim to this one.Â
âIâve been watching you all evening, and you are beautiful.â He smiled, stuttering over his words slightly, and Draco made no shy show of his disdain, rolling his eyes and making a disapproving sound. âI was wondering if you might grant me the pleasure of a dance?â
âShe would dance with you,â Enzo interrupted, before you could speak at all, leaning forward toward the edge of your chair from his own, and you could have kissed him in gratitude for saving you. âBut, she promised me her first dance. Isnât that right, love? And I think now is the perfect time. Letâs go.â
Offering you his hand, you took it, letting him sweep you away without a secondâs delay, navigating you both to the dance floor and twirling you expertly into his arms. One hand clasped your own, the other sitting at a respectable place on your waist, your own on his shoulder, and he fell into the well-rehearsed steps of a classical ballroom dance heâd been doing since he could walk.Â
You let out a shaky sigh, relief flooding your veins as you looked back to your seat, noticing that the boy had taken Enzoâs rejection well and disappeared, not hanging around and waiting for your return.Â
âYouâre killing him slowly, like a predator playing with its prey,â Enzo smirked, neither of you needing to clarify who you were talking about, as he brought up his cousin.Â
âI donât know what youâre talking about.â
âReally?â He chuckled, spinning you out before pulling you back in, sharp actions that made you dizzy with their accuracy, and you grinned as he brought you tumbling right back into his arms, perfectly. If heâd been trying to win you over, his dancing alone wouldâve had you swooning. âYou just show up to a fancy event like this, dripping in diamonds and pearls and looking like a million bucks, supposedly single. You mean to tell me you didnât know that all these rich London boys wouldn't descend on you like vultures?â
âNot my fault Iâm single and hot, Enz.â
He just laughed, dipping you a little. âWe do struggle, donât we.â You wove between people, a happy silence falling between you both once again as he guided you over the floor, back and forth, âAre you, though? Single, I mean.â
âThat is up to your cousin.â
âTouchĂŠ.â
You continued to move, until your feet were sore from all the twirling, clinging to Enzo in fits of giggles as he spun and twirled and dipped you more, hands on your waist as he lifted you through the air, making a show of his dancing.Â
He may have seemed altruistic in his gestures, sweeping in to save you and Draco from your dance with the boy, but he was using you too. Enzo was taking every opportunity to show off his moves to every lady around the room watching, a flirty smile on his face between conversations and he glanced around, and you wouldn't be surprised if he received more offers than Theo or Dario by the end of the night.Â
As the third song came to an end, and the music fell for just a second, you panted slightly, arm around his neck now, looking up at him with flushed cheeks and a bright smile. âCan we take a break?â
âTired, already? You only gave me three so far.â He smirked at the way your jaw dropped, your face going hot and you knew your cheeks were red. You untangled yourself from his body, barely making it a step away from his laughter before he wrapped an arm around your waist, tugging you into his side. âOh, câmon. I thought the aim was to flirt and make him mad?â
âHeâs not even here to listen!â
âIâm practising,â Enzo murmured, steering you towards the bar, and leaning on the wood as he flagged down the bartender. You were quickly served, by a woman who fawned over Enzo as she passed by, and you had to snap your fingers in front of his face to snap his gaze away from her retreating form. âSo, how long are you going to make himââ
A tap on Enzoâs shoulder cut him off, and he turned to look, straightening up instantly from his slumped position. As soon as he moved so you could see, your relaxation melted away too, as you found yourself face to face with Narcissa and Lucius Malfoy.Â
âLorenzo, Iâve hardly had a chance to talk to you all evening. I want to ask you about your schoolwork.â The impressively formal and deep voice of Lucius Malfoy settled over your skin like fresh snow, cold but smooth, and you shuddered.Â
Narcissa only chuckled lightly at her husbandâs words, her eyes on you. âYouâve been busy, though. Who is your lovely lady?â
âUncle Lucius, Aunt Cissa. This is my friend, (Y/n).â
It wasnât exactly the circumstances youâd wanted to meet them under, but you smiled nonetheless, nerves running wild as you offered your hand to them both, shaking politely just as your parents had taught you.Â
âAh, (Y/n). Yes. I make a point of knowing all of Dracoâs school friends, but Iâm in business with your father, arenât I?â Something like a small kernel of sweetness was buried in that statement, his interest in his sonâs life, even if he tried to hide it behind formalities, but it wasnât your place to comment.Â
âYes, sir. That is correct.â
âTheyâre very proud of your schoolwork. They were telling me about your latest project. You synthesised a new potion to grow murkweed faster, is that true?â
You were surprised he knew so much, your small project submitted for Herbology was the last thing youâd expected Lucius Malfoy to know of, or take an interest in, and your mouth felt like sandpaper as you tried to form words. âYes. Yes, sir. Thatâs right.â
âInteresting.â That calculating gaze scanned over you, analysing you from head to toe, like he could see right through you with a single glance. âThat is impressive, for someone of your age. Iâd be open to learning more. Are you considering making a future out of your alchemy talents? I have connections that I could contact for you.âÂ
You were speechless, your stomach going wild with butterflies born of both excitement and anxiety. He smirked, a look that would set you on edge if you werenât sure deep down that this was in your interests, not against them.Â
âPerhaps we can discuss it more soon, when we next see you. With Enzo?â
Enzoâs arm around your waist shifted, a reassuring weight that you were sure had been your only grounding presence for this surreal conversation. He patted your hip encouragingly. âOh, no, we arenâtâŚâÂ
Motioning between you both, Luciusâ brows furrowed, and Narcissa tried to hide her sigh.
âSorry to disappoint you, Aunt Cissa. (Y/n) isnât mine, though it is wonderful that you approve.â Before either could question him, or expand on their confusion, Enzo gave your waist a final rub, before removing his touch from you entirely, and stepping towards his family. âShall we go and discuss schoolwork then, Uncle? You have questions, and I have answers. I hope the ones you want.â
âIt was a pleasure to meet you, Miss (Y/l/n).â Lucius politely offered you his hand again, shaking it firmly, and that was about as friendly a dismissal as youâd ever get from him, youâd heard. This was only supported by the surprised look on Narcissaâs face, and the beam Enz gave you as he guided his uncle away.Â
âI hope to see you again soon, (Y/n). You look wonderful this evening, thank you for coming.â Narcissa murmured, before following her husband and nephew, glancing back at you only once over her shoulder. She knew. The woman was far more cunning than she let on, the true embodiment of a sneaky Slytherin, observing quietly and taking everything in. Her eyes glinted. She knew you knew she knew, too.
Your heart was pounding, cheeks warm as you lifted your fingers to them cautiously. The disappointed waitress placed down two drinks before you, Enzo long gone without his, but you smiled at her with appreciation, fingers shaking a little as you lifted the glass to your lips to take a sip.Â
Youâd spoken to Dracoâs parents.Â
Theyâd liked you. Lucius had offered to put you onto the career path, and Narcissa had complimented your dress. A soft laugh of disbelief slipped free, your eyes sliding closed for just a second as you revelled in the moment.Â
It hasnât been what youâd set out for tonight, but it was far more than what youâd hoped for. Opening your eyes again, to head back to the table and find Draco, you were met by the sight of a stranger leaning before you on the bar, grinning down at you in amusement. âHello.â
âHi.â You gave a terse smile, and a single nod. âIf youâll excuse meââ
âI didnât even get to ask you to dance yet. Saw you out on the floor with the Berkshire boy, earlier, and I thoughtââ
âIâm dancing with her next, mate. Piss off.âÂ
Draco rarely sounded that mad, a chill went down your spine as you felt an arm slide around your waist, tugging you back into his chest. âDrayâŚâ
The stranger only scoffed, glaring at Draco as he wandered away, and your hand reached for his forearm on your body. He snatched it away too soon, however, tugging on your hip to turn you around. His jaw was clenched tight, eyes more frozen than the coldest glacier. âDance with me.â
Not a request, and he didnât wait for an answer, before plucking your drink from your hand and slamming it down onto the bar, guiding you back to the swaying bodies. Standing before you, you offered him your hand, your hand sitting lightly on his shoulder. He didnât take the respectable route, instead, his arm wrapped tight around your waist, sweeping you close to his body, and beginning to move you both in simple steps.Â
It was several minutes before he relaxed, your arm sliding further around his neck in a more intimate hold, bringing the two of you much closer, swaying slowly. The tension in his body gave way with every step, and with a resigned sigh, he finally spoke, âYou met my parents.â
âI did. They were lovely. Very curious about Enzo and Iâs relationship.â
His hand clenched on your waist, and you tipped your head at him as his piercing gaze drilled into you. One more moveâŚ
âOh, donât be so mad, Dray. Weâre only shagging, after all. Youâll find a new girl if I get swept away by someone else.â
His eyes narrowed, jaw clenching, and a fire burned in those silver eyes now, melting the ice away with rage. Checkmate.
âYou win, alright? Iâm not playing this stupid game any longer.â He took a deep breath, and another, fingers twitching on your back as jealousy bubbled under the surface. âFor fucks sake, how many pieces of jewellery from other guys are you wearing? Who bought you those earrings, that necklace? I should be the only one buying you gifts. I should be the one spoiling you. You want the Malfoy family ring? Iâll go yank it off my motherâs engagement ring from her finger right now, just take all this off.â
He studied you for a second, confusion growing at the smirk that grew on your lips. Victory was yours, and you leaned in, pressing a delicate kiss to his cheek. Letting the hand from his neck smooth down his chest, his gaze stayed locked on the jewels around your neck, glaring angrily. âNo.â
âNo?â
âNo. Itâs pretty. Iâm going to keep wearing it all, let it remind you what you have. Next time you piss me off, forget a date, or use the last of my shampoo, Iâm going to put it all back on so you can remember how many guys would jump at the chance.â His nostrils flared, but he stayed silent, wisely knowing when to keep his mouth shut. âI donât want your family ring, Malfoy. Not yet. I just want a proper title, and the respect that comes with it. Iâm not your booty call, or your side piece. You donât want to play games anymore? Then donât.â
âYou already won.â He whispers, his head dropping down to let his forehead rest on your own. âYou know how much you mean to me.â
âYes, I do. But I want the whole world to know it, too, Dray.â
He didnât respond verbally. Instead, he twisted his head, enough to press his mouth to your own, silencing any more arguments between you both as he kissed you. His lips claimed yours, a tender and loving kiss, showing everyone just how much you meant to him. There was no mistaking the emotions within it, not as his arms wrapped around your body, holding you to him as the pretence of dancing was given up, your hand on the back of his head, fingers in his hair, meeting every push and pull.
When he pulled away, your smile took over, bashful now under his openly adoring gaze, and he stole several more pecks from your lips. A happy sound escaped you as he tugged you in, tucking his face into your neck, and swaying you both to the music.Â
âHave I told you how beautiful you look tonight?â
âYou have, but Iâd be open to hearing it again.â Your hand smoothed over his hair, and he chuckled against your skin, leaving a kiss on the crook of your neck before raising to meet your eye.Â
âYou are breathtaking, darling. Iâm in awe. This colour is my favourite, you know.â
âWhy do you think I wore it?â
His fingers trailed down your spine, eyes sparkling even more at that revelation. âHow about we get out of here? Weâll make our goodbyes to my parents, and head out.â
âOur goodbyes?â You repeated as he took your hand, lacing your fingers together.Â
âYes. From their son and his girlfriend. I think you deserve a proper introduction, after all.â
Tugging you across the floor, he gave you no time to prepare, and certainly, none to disagree, as you smoothed your hair and attempted to control the blush heâd brought to your cheeks. Through the crowds he wove, until he was pulling to a stop just shy of his parents, and Enzo looked as though he could have cried with relief when Luciusâ intense focus was taken away from him. The boy quickly slipped away as both of Dracoâs parents turned to face you.Â
âMiss (Y/l/n), when we said we hoped to see you again soon, I didnât realise youâd take it quite this literally.â He murmured, voice as low and calm as always, and your lips parted, a different kind of heat flooding your features.Â
âOh, behave now, Lucius,â Narcissa grinned, her gaze dropping to your clasped hands, before she reached up to her sonâs face, pinching his cheek with a smile. âDraco, darling, Iâve hardly seen you all evening.â
âWell, Iâm sorry to disappoint you Mother, but weâll be leaving early.â She only gave him a knowing look, ignoring Luciusâ displeased huff, as if she wasnât surprised at all.Â
ââWeâ?â
âMy girlfriend and I.â He said, proud and strong, before tugging you forward a little more to stand in front of him. His hand left your own, circling your waist instead, and she offered him a smile at the news.Â
âI see.â She smiled, patting her sonâs cheek affectionately, before turning that knowing gaze on you. âNow Lorenzoâs evasiveness whenever I asked him about you makes sense.â
âYou asked about me?â Your words were a rushed squeak, which only seemed to amuse Narcissa more.Â
âOf course, dear. I wanted to know more about you. Iâd ask you to sit and chat with me for a spell, but I believe my son might combust if I did.â
âMother!â He gasped, and Lucius only tutted.Â
âDraco.â His father growled softly, shaking his head, and the red on his sonâs cheeks only grew.
âYou both may go, for now. But I hope youâll visit me soon, and we might talk?â
âYou mean⌠just us?â Your words tapered off to a near whisper, and Lucius smirked to himself as Draco rolled his eyes.Â
âYes, dear. Weâll have tea.â
You could only nod, bidding your final farewells to them both in a state of awe, before Draco was hurrying you along. Tight hands gripping your waist, lips on your neck as he loved you through the crowds, swiping up your bag and giving you barely a moment to say goodbye to your friends before sweeping you away again. It was only due to the snow falling outside, you were sure, that he allowed you to stop long enough to get your coats.Â
Helping you, he lifted the garment onto you from behind, kissing your cheek as he reached around your body to fasten it. His elegant coat was already on, and leather gloves were on his hands as he offered you one. Lacing your fingers through his own, he smiled, tugging you out into the freezing night, and ushering you around the side of the Manor, away from the stream of cars lined up for guests as they left.Â
âWhere are we going, Dray?âÂ
âTo one of the gardens near the path.â He never turned back, leading you carefully around patches of ice and slippery snow as you moved, the light from the house fading. It was almost pitch black, before he mumbled a small spell, and the garden lights glowed to light, glittering on the fresh blanket of ice.Â
Sitting on the grass was an old-fashioned sleigh, enchanted to keep dry, even in the snow, and two reindeer sat happily in the snow snuffling at the grass and scattered food.Â
The landscape stretched out far before you both, trees and grass and walls all covered in snow like something from a Christmas card, and the sigh that left your lips clouded in the air before your face.Â
âOh, DracoâŚâ Taking a few steps closer, snow-tipped over the tops of your heels as you stepped off the pathway onto the grass, chilling your feet for only a second, before Draco was following. Scooping you up into his arms, you kicked the ice from your feet with a giggle, your arms looping around his neck. âWhatâs all this?â
âThis is your Christmas present. I didnât realise that was the kind of ice you wanted instead.â He muttered, eyes flicking down to your neck, as he carried you carefully through the snow and towards the ornate sleigh. As you leaned in to kiss his cheek, he smiled shyly, avoiding your gaze as he became embarrassed, âI wanted to do something romantic for you. We can take the sleigh back to the town, get a cab, and take the jet anywhere you want to go. Pansy already packed a bag for you.â
He placed you down on the edge of the sleigh, letting you shuffle across onto the warmed leather. With another kiss to your lips, he scoffed at your smile.Â
âMerry Christmas, my wicked little girlfriend.â
âI canât believe you arranged all this.â You were practically bouncing in your seat, watching as Draco nervously tugged on the reins, prompting the lazy animals to stand back up, before settling into the sleigh himself. Like they knew just what to do, they took off in a slow trot, tugging the pair of you along through the snow.Â
âMaybe if youâd have waited, instead of making me fight for my life tonight, youâd have been surprised.â
His arm was splayed along the back of the seat, and you snuggled in a little closer to him. Curling his arm around you, he pressed a kiss to your forehead, shaking his head and burying his nose in your hair. âIf I didnât make you fight for me, Dray, youâd probably have introduced me to your mother as your study partner. I gave you a little push, thatâs all.â
âIs that so?â He muttered, guiding your face up so he could peck your lips. âWho do you think helped me arrange all of this for my âlovely lady friendâ, hm? Iâve been writing to my mother about having an interest in someone for months now. You underestimate me.â
âYou never gave me any other indication!âÂ
âOh, please. You walk me like a damn dog, you knew how I felt.â His mouth closed over your own, stealing a kiss, and you couldn't help but smile into it. âI think tonight just proves it.â
The sleigh trotted on as Draco kissed you in the back, beyond thought and reason, your hands tucked into his coat for warmth as he kept you cuddled in close to his side.Â
Minutes melted away, the two of you lost in your own world as you jostled and trotted through the fields, back toward the town. Whatever he had planned, it had been in motion for days, and the thought only made you fall a little more in love with him. Perhaps you had underestimated him, but none of it mattered now, not when he was kissing you like you were his only way to breathe, and you had him in your arms, properly, at last.
âSo, Pansy knew about your little plan?â
âYes. I told her days ago.âÂ
âHmâŚâ You loved her, and it was perhaps her knowledge of Dracoâs actions that made this all the funnier. âSo, she knew about your plan, and mine. And still, she made sure to introduce guys to me all night. She played us both just for her own amusement.â
As you thought of her, your fingers lifted to your neck, sitting on the delicate jewellery there, and Draco huffed. Looping his finger underneath it, he tugged lightly. âCan you take this off now, please?â
âWhy would I do that?â His pout deepened, glaring at the offending item, and you gave in with an airy laugh. âPansy, Daph and Tori picked it out personally.â
âWhat?â His head snapped up, pout gone as his jaw dropped, and he was not laughing like you were. âYou let me believe another guy decked you out in diamonds all night! What about the matching earrings?â
âBlaise.â
âThe bracelet?â
âTheo and the Notts.âÂ
At that mention, his eyes narrowed again, searching for your clutch and finding it resting in your lap. âBut Theoâs cousin Mario gave you a separate gift.â
âDario.â You corrected, and he mimicked it childishly, scoffing afterwards. âWell, that part was real. He truly was flirting, and I have no idea what it is, I havenât opened it yet.â
âGive it to me.â He reached for your bag, a second too slow as you swiped it away from him with a gasp. He didnât give up, still trying to snatch it as he leaned over you, pressing you back into the seat through fits of laughter, the two of you fighting over the bag until it was pressed to your chest, your eyes wide as you stared up at him, shaking your head. âGive it to me! Iâm chucking it, hand it over!â
âNo, itâs mine!â He slumped back into his seat, panting for breath and smoothing his hair back down. He was pointedly staring away in the opposite direction, and when you leaned in closer with a chuckle, he leaned away. Grabbing his shoulder, you planted yourself firmly in his lap, kissing the underside of his jaw. âIâm keeping it, but your present is better, I just know it. Whatever it is, could never beat this.â
âPromise?â
âI promise, Dray.âÂ
He gave in, wrapping his arms around your waist, tugging you in closer to his body and pressing a happy kiss to your cheek. âFine, but Iâm buying you a new necklace when we get off the damn plane. I donât care who bought that one.â
#draco malfoy#draco malfoy x reader#draco malfoy x you#draco malfoy/reader#draco malfoy/you#harry potter#slytherin boys#tom felton#draco malfoy x y/n
9K notes
¡
View notes
Text
complementary - the physics of your body [part 1] (sjy)
pairing: brother's best friend!jake x afab!reader
synopsis: The thermodynamics of your bodies together, the sound wave of your moans, the gravity that pulled you towards each other. You were a perfect combination, the right equilibrium, complementary.
my's note: i had to break this work into two parts due to the size of it, i'm so sorry. i'll post the part 2 in a few days! my longest (and dirtiest) work lol. i used some physics concepts but funny thing hah i know nothing about physics SO PLEASE don't think too much into it... also don't know if i'd commit this much with a fic if wasn't for ari freaking out whenever I teased to add something new so please everyone say thank you ari! <3 on a side note: this is especially for her. i love you, ari đ
warnings: mention of trauma from parents, jay is y/nâs older brother, jake is jay's best friend and three years older than the reader, physics stuff lol, reader blushing/turning red!, drama/arguments, fluff, angst a little (with happy ending!!), pet names (babe, doll, good girl...) SMUT - so minors DO NOT interact!, unprotected sex (donât do it!!!), oral (m.), choking, jk cum inside, gag, overstimulation (m.). lmk if i missed something!
wc: 27k.
NOT PROOFREAD.
taglist đ: @yvnempire, @marigold-sunflowers
âI know that delaying it seemed the right thing to do at the time, but I donât think you can run away from physics anymore, kiddo.â
As your eyes rolled, annoyed with the nickname, you smacked the pizza dough into the cold marble, kneading it to make it perfectly soft. The inner core of your stomach tightened with the reminder, bringing a bitter taste on the back of your throat that made you gulp.
âIâm literally in my second year in college and youâre still calling me that.â
Your muttered words elicited an immediate laugh from Jay, your big brother, who had his body resting on the door frame while watching you across the kitchen, panicking over the fact that you would finally have to deal with your biggest fear in school, by choosing to randomly make pizza at 4pm on a thursday.
âIt helps me to destress,â you explained once. âTo smack something thatâs not someoneâs face.â
âYouâd always be my kiddo,â he answered back fondly, yet with a hint of mocking, as he moved to sit at the kitchen peninsula chair.Â
Jay never really raised a question over your decisions and behaviors, applauding and supporting you every time while shooting loving eyes towards you whenever you were around doing your silly little things; just like now, as he followed your movements, a bit concerned with your deep frown and how quickly your hands worked on the dough, but nearby just in case you needed some help.
Over the years, the two of you shared a strong, healthy bond, especially within the walls of the house you grew up in.
Having wealthy parents came with its perks and its drawbacks, but for you, the drawbacks often outweighed the rest. Pursuing a dream that didnât align with your dadâs expectations felt almost like a betrayal of your familyâs values, as if you were intentionally choosing to disappoint them by turning away from the prospect of becoming a doctor, lawyer, or even a future CEO of the family company.
Some would say you were crazy for challenging yourself into a rougher path, giving away the possibilities of a stable life to pursue your real dreams. However, it didnât sound right for you to live a life without your wills being the main worry of it, forcing yourself to fit a model instead of creating your own.
Amidst the chaos you grew up in, Jay was always there to hold you close and feel proud with your achievements, protecting and looking after you.
He would drive you to your classes every morning when he started high school and you were still finishing middle school, buy you expensive gifts, and take you to fancy restaurants for your birthday. He always had his bedroomâs door unlocked for you to come when you felt like crying in the middle of the night because of something shitty your parents screamed at you. He never minded skipping work or classes if it meant staying home to take care of you when you were sick. And he had no issue scaring away any guy who, in his eyes, never seemed to be worthy enough of you.
You couldnât help but laugh whenever his protective tactics worked, knowing that, deep down, your brother was just a big softie, never ever daring to kill an insect and crying over romantic movies.
Moving in with him always sounded right, it was part of your big plans; finish school, get into college and share an apartment with your brother, who would be just wrapping up his own studies.
Jay offered you the reliability you needed.
He was three years older than you, now working as a CEO in one of your familyâs company subsidiaries after finishing administration school, and tried his best to give you everything you wanted and needed to live a good, comfortable life at least until you achieved your goal and stability by yourself, not wanting for your to do side jobs and focus only on studying.
Jay never cared much about doing it for him, choosing to pamper you to the brim without asking for anything back, even though you unconsciously paid with your happiness.
Due to your tough relationship with your parents, you never really took it for granted, working hard to keep yourself steady enough to live alone if you need to â Jay, on the other hand, would move mountains for that never to happen.
Jay fought for his place in the world with a little less struggle than you, and he blamed himself for it to some extent.
Your parents beamed with joy when he announced he would be studying business administration; you still remember that night of celebration, with your father practically glowing with happiness â the kind of happiness you knew you would never be able to give him, since you wanted to follow the artistic path of the spectrum.
Eventually, with your decisionâs outcome, Jay made it his mission to take care of both of you, because he understood that life had been unfair to you. It wasnât your fault that you didnât want to follow the pattern they had set out for you based only on their expectations. You didnât deserve to hear the hurtful words your parents threw at you, expressing their disappointment and sadness over who you had become.
Jay, however, admired the incredible woman you had turned into, in awe of your strength to keep fighting for your dreams, and he worked tirelessly to ensure you were safe, sound, and happy.
Now, you were in your second year in college, studying fine arts with Jayâs unwavering financial support; he offered you a comfortable place to live, covered your tuition and fees, food, clothes, and even your materials and books without bothering to ask for anything back in return.
The only thing he wanted was for you to concentrate on your studies and be happy.
And focus you did, although you had postponed as much as you could to finish a part of the core curriculum.
After everything you had been through, you could honestly say that physics was your biggest â and most frustrating â enemy.Â
You hated physics with passion, never understanding why the fuck you had to study it.
The speed of the light? Why bother? You would never use it to measure anything in your everyday life anyway. And gravity? Yeah, you knew it kept you grounded on Earth, but it sure didnât help you keep your steps steady. You were constantly tripping over your own feet.
It just never made sense to you. It only made you want to scream in frustration, tearing at your hair with every weird equation and choice of words to explain annoying, bullshit stuff.
âI just hate physics,â you groaned, breath heavy as your anger increased; a few strands of hair fell messily across your face, making the whole situation worse. âI hate it,â you muttered, punching the dough harder. Jay laughed. âHate it, hate it, hate it!â You repeated, each word punctuated by another angry smack against the poor pizza dough.
Jay, trying to hide his grin, shook his head. "I donât think the pizza dough has anything to do with your physics situation," he teased.
As much as he loved you, he was your brother and would always find a way to taunt your nerves before really offering a helping hand.Â
A deep sigh escaped your lips as you fluttered your eyes close and threw your head back. You could feel the heat rising in your cheeks, a mix of irritation and helplessness washing over you working as a perfect mix to send you to the edge of losing control, and you wondered why you got so triggered over such a trivial thing.
Then, it clicked. Of course, trauma from your parents.Â
You had always pushed yourself over the limit to be better, to get the highest grades and do your absolute best in school, only to feel frustrated when you couldnât achieve perfection.
In your parentsâ eyes, you would never be good enough no matter how many perfect scores you aced on exams and assignments.
In college, despite moving out of their house and ending contact almost entirely, you still held yourself to the same impossible standards, sometimes even worse.
Confronting a subject where you knew you couldnât be the best felt like a trigger, a reminder of everything you had been told over the years.
Useless. Incapable. Insufficient.
You automatically remembered last night, when you sat at your desk, eyes wandering over the physics textbooks sprawled open on the surface, words coming in a blur. You couldnât pinpoint when exactly it was due to your incapacity to understand them or to your tears that flowed easily after some minutes sitting in trance.
The weight was almost suffocating and you called it a day when your hands started to tremble and your body ached for rest, feeling extra tired just by⌠staring.
You rested your hips on the cold marble, blinking your eyelids open to glance at your brother. He had now a softened expression, calm and fond, hands comfortably placed on the countertop.
âI think Iâm just oversensitive,â you said, voice barely above a whisper as your hands now played with the dough absentmindedly, eyes slowly lowering to watch how your fingers disappeared into the soft white mixture. âYâknow, our parents theyâŚâ You trailed off, not really wanting to verbalize your thoughts.
âYeah,â Jay nodded, sighing. The knot in his heart tightened seeing you so pouty, understanding from how deep and particular your frustration came. âListen, I know you hate it, but you have to at least do the minimum to pass. You donât have to ace it all.â Jay spoke while standing up to wrap around the counter and stand by your side, his body resting on the counter as well.Â
You leaned into the touch when he caressed your hair, your whole body shifting to a less tense figure.
Jay tilted his head forward enough to search for your sad, puppy eyes. Suddenly, an insight crossed his mind and his lips curved into a smile.
âI have a friend,â he said and you finally glanced at him. The unexpected mention of his friend and how he sounded like having a great idea sparking your curiosity. âI think heâd love to help you.â
âSo, I invited the guys over,â Jay said while placing some beers on the minifridge near the entrance of your shared living room. You were standing up awkwardly in the middle of the room, eyes following Jayâs excited figure as he organized the house to welcome his friends. âAnd while me, Heeseung and Sunghoon do something fun, you and Jake can do the boring stuff.â
Jay had a plan, a solid one. And in any other circumstance you wouldnât be so nervous about it.Â
It was just another regular Friday. It was also routine for you to go out with your friends to some bar, club, or even have a girls' night at someone's house, while Jay would head to the house his friends shared.
Jay always used the excuse that he would rather keep the house free for you or not bother you, especially on those nights when you would choose to stay home to relax or study, though part of you suspected that sometimes he was actually heading to a girl's house and just didnât want to tell you.
Either way, today felt different.
It all started with him inviting the guys over to his place instead of the other way around, followed by a surprisingly sweet request for you to stay in and not go anywhere.
Soon after, he revealed his plan: he, Sunghoon, and Heeseung would play video games in the living room while you and Jake studied physics in some other corner of the house. He promised they would keep the noise down so as not to disturb you.
As said before, in any other situation you wouldnât be reacting the way you were; hands sweating, heart pumping loudly in your eardrums, head spinning. But in other situations there was no Jake in the equation.
Sim fucking Jaeyun, also known as Jake, was one of Jayâs closest friends, acting as much as siblings as you two.
They met in school and hadn't left each otherâs side ever since, sharing hundreds of stories together, with a bunch of adventures and countless funny moments. You closely watched them grow up and accomplish things side by side, constantly attending Jake's birthday parties and other of his familyâs events, even participating vividly on some of the âboyâs nightâ in your house where you crushed them in the video games they choose to play, always eliciting surprised sounds from Jake followed by compliments excitedly said, that, at some point, started to make you feel things.
When Jay moved out to start college, you were left alone at the house that aimed to destroy your dreams and, indirectly, you, having to deal with a lot on your own, constantly hearing the harsh words from your parents and having to lower your head without the courage to fight back, because Jay wasnât there to defend you anymore.
Jayâs routine became heavy, as he landed an internship early during his second year that consumed most of his time, barely having minutes to talk to you over the phone, moments where you opted to listen to his news and college life instead of filling him with your teenager suffering bullshit.Â
On the other hand, Jake, who was also in college, had way more free time. Whenever he went back to visit his own parents, he would set a time to take you out on weekends, helping you clear your head by treating you with some ice cream and any other snacks you wanted while listening to your concerns.
You grew really close to Jake during your high school years, noticing the genuine attention he gave you. Jake would always be close to you as a protective older brother, someone who looked out for you and took good care of you, a very trustworthy and sincere friend.
And yet, you always, always felt guilty for letting your feelings for him go beyond âjust friends.â
Jake was the same age as Jay â three years older than you, three years more experienced, three years more everything. He was, now, a man. A very attractive, hot, appealing man.Â
You had the chance to watch Jake grow up right before your eyes, transforming from a good-looking teenager into a charming young man. He had an irresistible smile, warm brown eyes that radiated kindness and sweetness, and a genuine aura that permeated his personality â always wanting to help others in the most caring way possible.
He was friendly, easygoing, sociable, and intelligent.
And when you saw him blossom, it was impossible not to feel completely captivated.
You vividly remember the time your brother posted a photo with his friends at the beach, and there was Jake, shirtless, showing off his toned, slightly sun-kissed body to the world. At that time you were already in your first year of college, while he was finishing up his own studies deep into the engineer life he chose to live.Â
Your relationship had cooled off a bit, as his academic demands increased and his visits became less frequent, until you eventually moved in with your brother. You assumed you would see Jake more often, but, for reasons unknown, Jay rarely invited his friends over to visit and Jake never really reached out for you.
It became awkward.
You attended parties with your brother and met Sunghoon and Heeseung, Jayâs college friends, that created a unique bond despite having known each other for less time. The four of them became as close as family, and Jay made sure his friends knew you in order to keep you safe when he wasnât around, constantly allowing them to pick you up on your way back home due to some unexpected schedule that kept him from doing it himself, for instance.
Jake, however, became distant. He would always have excuses not to do any of that and whenever you saw him at parties, he would at most give you a forced smile and a slight, polite nod, quickly diverting his path and avoiding you for the rest of the night.
It was painful in a way, especially since now that you were grown you realized your chances with him might actually be within reach.Â
As a teenager, your crush was as subtle as possible, aware that neither Jake nor Jay would ever approve of any kind of relationship between the two of you, so you never truly considered anything happening.
But now you had become a woman. And a relatively attractive one, if you did say so yourself. So, just as physics had never made sense to you, Jakeâs reaction to your presence had become just as baffling, until eventually you buried your feelings completely and moved on.
At least, thatâs what you thought â until Jay came up with this wild idea of having Jake as your physics tutor.
You gulped down your nervousness for the probably ninetieth time, now intensified by the bell ringing. Jay was in the bathroom and shouted for you to open the front door, saying it was the guys that had arrived.
As you made your way towards the entrance, your legs felt wobbly and your heart was racing fast as you clutched the doorâs knob. You took a deep breath, silently counting to ten before finally turning the handle.
âY/N!â Heeseung was the first to greet you with his usual bright smile, wrapping you immediately with his long arms in a tight hug, not minding that he carried some bags with his hands or that they clashed against your back. His blonde hair was perfectly parted, giving a very enticing aura to his already charming presence.Â
You smiled in response, warmed by his sweet embrace. By his side stood Sunghoon, his dark hair and thick brows framing his pale face perfectly. His cheeks rounded up as he gave you a shy, endearing smile before pulling you into his own hug.
âMissed you,â he muttered softly against your hair and you chuckled, squeezing him just a bit tighter before stepping back.
âYou guys never come to see me, so I donât know whoâs really missing who here,â you shot back with a teasing grin, pretending to pout as you moved away from Sunghoon, almost forgetting about the third presence standing behind them in the hallway.Â
After hearing their laughs and letting them in, your eyes flickered to the man awkwardly waiting for the interaction between the three of you to settle. Your breath hitched when your gaze met his, and you had to dig self control from the depths of your mind not to overreact.Â
Jake was as handsome as ever.
He was casually dressed in a leather jacket over a white shirt and distressed jeans that seemed to fit him almost too perfectly. Effortlessly good, rough and soft just like your heart enjoyed, which was beating loudly in your ribcage, enough for you to fear to be heard even with the noises from the other two who had just entered your house and were greeting Jay.Â
âHey,â Jake managed to say without giving you a proper look, eyes avoiding your figure at all costs.Â
âHey,â you replied with a forced small smile, stepping back to give him space to pass through, even though there was more than enough. You felt like it would be like that the whole night: awkward and distant. And it only increased your anxiety.
As you closed the door, feet glued on the ground, you wondered if it would be harder to understand anything physics related or to deal with Jakeâs presence. The only coherent answer you found was that either would be a pain in the ass, and you would be the one getting fucked at the end. Emotionally and academically.Â
Watching them settling into your apartment, comfortably lounging on your couch while laughing and drinking the beer Jay served, you couldnât help but think when exactly the whole tutoring thing would start. You waited for someone to bring it up, because although it seemed like a good idea, your inner self had doubts about your own reaction when being in a place alone with Jake and had no plans to pursue or engage it.
The couchâs armrest had never felt so awkwardly uncomfortable as you sat there, listening to the endless, nonchalant chatter around you. One of your arms rested on the back of the couch, propping up your head as your eyes shifted between Jake and the others. Whenever he caught you staring, you quickly averted your gaze, pretending to act like you werenât a bundle of nerves just being in the same room with him.
Heeseung was the one near you, casually using your legs as a makeshift support to his own arm, and Jay sat beside him, completely indifferent to Heeseung's touchy nature â it became routine, to some extent.
Sunghoon and Jake took place on the smaller couch opposite to you, Jake smiling along to the conversation while adding his own points to the whatever story they were telling and Sunghoon laughter filling the room.Â
You always found it amusing how Sunghoon seemed to be the reserved one, but when he was with his friends he was definitely the loudest.
Heeseung and you grew closer than you expected, often being the one giving you rides home, even raising some suspicions among your friends about being your boyfriend. As nice, gentle and charming he was, you never saw yourself having feelings for or even dating him.
Not when Jake was on the equation.
What?
âBut hey, Jake,â Heeseung suddenly cut the topic and gave a quick squeeze on your thigh. âWerenât you supposed to be helping Y/N with her studies?â
A cold chill immediately filled your belly and you froze in place, the smile lingering on your lips by listening to their funny chatter fading slowly as you lifted your gaze to Jake. Heeseung was innocently asking, but it caused your stomach to flip a whole 360, and the room was now dividing looks between you two.
You watched as Jakeâs expression faltered for just a moment, then quickly returned to his usual easy going demeanor. Before he said anything in response, Jay took the front of it.
âOh, thatâs right,â Jay said, leaning back into the couch with a teasing grin. âI asked you to help my sister, not come here to drink my beer and lounge on my expensive couch.â
You wanted to sink into the floor, or at least disappear. Jake shifted uncomfortably, the smallest hint of a smile on his lips though you could clearly tell he was faking it. Jayâs obliviousness only made it worse, as if he couldnât even sense the awkwardness between you and Jake.
There was no blame on him, though, especially because no one expected any type of tension between any of you.Â
You shot a quick glance at Jake again, who was avoiding your gaze once more, and all of a sudden the room felt too small, too crowded, as if the space around you was closing in, sinking you deep into a pool of anxiety.Â
âYou donât have to bother, really,â your voice filled the room, words waving weirdly in the air. You let out a mild chuckle, pushing yourself from your seating to stand up. âIâll go to my room, so you guys can hangââ
âHey, no way,â Jay interrupted your attempt of running away, frowning and lifting his beer bottle to point it at you, yet blind to the real atmosphere unfolding. âDonât try to escape from physics, kiddo.â
Heeseungâs small snort followed Jay's words, giving you teasing glinted eyes before remarking, his lips against his beer bottle. âYeah, Y/N. Youâve been avoiding it for Godâs know how long.âÂ
Somehow Heeseungâs choice of words seemed to light up a strange feeling in your chest, as if he was reading beyond reality, slightly aware of the you and Jake situation â to begin with, there was no you and Jake situation. No way he would say that about your relationship with physics alone. Anyway, your cheeks warmed instantly, your eyes wavering to any other place rather than the rest of the people sharing that abruptly small space with you.
âI think the kitchen is far enough for you both,â Sunghoon quickly added with a relaxed nod, sipping on his beer. âWe promise not to be loud, yeah?â He smirked, completely aware he was the loudest in the house so far.Â
You chuckled, switching your weight on your foot. âI canât believe it when youâre the one saying it,â you teased back, eliciting an immediate laugh from Sunghoon. âBut yeah, the kitchen seems to be an okay place. Besides, thereâs food and I can totally escape from physics or whatever with food,â you shot Jay a playful grin, quirking an eyebrow, challenging.Â
âDonât you dare.â Jay said firmly, but not really. You knew he was nothing but a worried brother about your mental health and how your academic performance affected it, wishing to give you only the best.
Unfortunately, the best in his vision wasnât necessarily the best you needed at that moment.Â
Jake finally stood up, fixing his clothes as he did so, running his fingers through his thick hair and glancing at you; your eyes tracked his every movement, the sinking feeling in your stomach tightening with the view. He was so damn hot.Â
âThe kitchen it is, then.â
You nodded, swallowing the lump of nervousness in your throat that came back in a strike, after reminding you would be spending quite a long time alone with Jake, having nowhere to run nor anything to calm down your fluttering heart.
Your legs betrayed you, feeling weak under the pressure of the situation. Still, you forced yourself to move, muttering a quiet âIâll go grab my books,â before rushing off towards your room.
As you came back, hands shaking and mouth dry, you headed straight to the kitchen wishing to have some more time alone to organize your thoughts, gather yourself and regain your senses before calling Jake. Unexpectedly, he was already there, sitting stiffly on the chair he chose while his slender fingers rapidly danced on his phone screen, unaware of your presence.
Your entire body froze, your plan going down the drain right away. You bit your lower lip, a soft, involuntary action that seemed to be the only thing holding you together in that moment. You had to keep moving forward. You had to. But you couldnât. Not when Jake was just⌠there.
A glimpse of a smirk curved the corner of his oh, so plush, distracting lips, glistening under the kitchenâs light while his attention was all on his phone, clearly chatting with someone. Girlfriend? The thought crossed your mind briefly; a man like Jake was probably taken already, and, to be honest, a small part of you almost hoped for it to be true, so you could stop torturing yourself over your silly feelings for him and really move on.
But Jake didnât ease your side, cheeky tongue every so often playing with the corner of his mouth, teeth pressing his plump bottom lip, and from where you stood you could see his pretty eyelashes fluttering with each blink, oblivious to the effect he was causing on you, oblivious to the storm happening inside your chest.
With a loud and sudden laugh his body jolted, phone slipping from his hands and clattering onto the table as he threw his head back, one of his hands messily running through his silk brown strands out of habit.
Only then he noticed you, standing up in the kitchenâs door, hugging your books, clearly staring.Â
âHoly fuck, Y/N!â He blurted out, a hand flying to his chest as if to steady himself, his puppy eyes widened to you, shoulders clearly tensed. âYou scared the shit out of me!â
âIâIâm sorry,â you stuttered, stepping further into the room and trying to sound casual, as if you werenât watching him from the past seconds with your heart almost ripping your ribcage open. âDidnât mean to.â
Jake took a second to regain his composure and his eyes involuntarily lingered on your figure longer than he wanted to, nearly shamelessly tracing the lines of your body; the soft curve of your bare shoulders, how your spaghetti strap top appealed to evidentiate your collarbone and tightened just enough on your chest. Then he paid attention to your pretty fingers clutching the edges of your notebook and books, lowering to the tiny bit of exposed skin of your belly, then your beautiful hips and covered legs.Â
You had chosen a comfortable outfit, not giving a thought about appearance at all â after all, not only the boys had seen you way worse, but the nightâs plans gravitated towards studying and studying only.
Even so, Jake had to hold himself back. There was something about the way your clothes hugged your form that had him silently disorientated, heart faltering some beats and breath hardly passing through his airways, his own body heating just by visualizing you.
He cleared his throat, glancing down to fidget with his phone as a way to ground himself, breaking the tension settled thickly between you two. The small sound brought you out of the daze you got yourself into without realizing it.
âSoâŚâ Jake finally said, his voice a bit unsteady and lower than you expected. âWhere do you want to start?â
His sweet eyes lifted to meet yours again, and his usual easy smile had a hint of something more cautious, more careful, as he focused on your adorable wide-eyed expression. He noticed your cheeks with a faint blush and couldnât hold back a little grin when you diverted your eyes shyly.Â
You slid into the seat across him, sprawling your materials over the table with a quiet sigh, your eyes anxiously avoiding Jakeâs.
âI have no idea.â You admitted, letting out a nervous chuckle, struggling to soothe your nerves. âThe basics?â You added unsurely and Jake was fast to nod tenderly.
Though he was dealing with a lot in his mind, he would always have a soft spot for you.Â
âBasics, yeah. Sounds great.â He agreed with a small smile, carefully reaching out your notebook and opening to scan your notes.Â
A wave of embarrassment flushed over you as you remembered the stupid things you wrote during your classes, fighting your demons trying to understand at least the bare minimum, scribbles that hardly made sense, and that now probably got you looking extra dumb and childish under Jakeâs judgment.
You heard him humming before grabbing one of your books, his fingers brushing yours quietly and quickly as he did so. You ignored the burst of electricity induced by that simple touch, watching how his slender fingers casually flipped the pages until he reached the one he was searching for.
âYou know, I can explain this easily to you,â Jake began to talk, his voice dropping to an unexpected gentle teacher-like tone as he leaned over the table a little, enough to get closer to you, enough to have your stomach twisting and flipping to every direction possible with the warmth his body radiated. âJust donât mind me if I get too technical sometimes.â
âNo problem,â you managed to say, grateful your voice was steady enough for you not to sound stupid or squealed, your eyes glued to your handwriting, tracing the lines of each word as a way of desperately dodging the possibility of meeting Jakeâs gaze.
Even the faintest peek of his furrowed brow when he was focused was enough to make you melt, and he had no idea of how attractive he looked when he was all serious and devoted explaining his nerd things.
âPromise me youâll tell me if you stop following me, alright?â He added, a smile tugging at his lips that you only saw by the corner of your eyes.Â
You nodded quickly, swallowing hard; the scent of his cologne was flooding your senses, drawing you in closer, making it harder to think straight.
âOkay,â you replied, quiet and breathlessly.
For the following few minutes Jake explained the concepts slowly, his voice calm and steady as he walked you through the basics, but your head kept drifting your attention away, deeply engaged with the way his gorgeous fingers traced the lines of your textbook. The following thoughts were too dirty to even continue with.
Jake had that familiar Australian accent that naturally made you weak, and now, combined with the way he had softened his tone, speaking so close to your face, it was enough to drive you completely insane. You couldnât focus on anything but how his warm breath traveled gently, brushing against the sensitive skin of your cheeks, increasing your fluster.
Your heart raced. It raced far too quickly.
The realization of how your body was reacting brought back memories of the times Jake had caused similar sensations in the past, back when he treated you with that older-brother tenderness and you would instantly overreact, shivering at his subtle touches, stuttering whenever his gaze landed on you with his usual captivating smile.
It was undeniable that something had shifted at some point; once there was the slight possibility of getting something more from him, no more holding âJay's little sister'sâ place. You couldnât quite grasp what happened or understand what had triggered such a sudden change, especially since you couldnât recall having done anything wrong.
Your mind kept drifting away from the materials in front of you. Physics was never your thing, and in that very moment no amount of effort could make it so.
Not when Jake was all over you; in your head, by your side, overwhelming your senses.
Every so often his gaze flicked back to you, expecting to see your attentive, engaged expression, and consequently catching the way you chewed on your lower lip or absentmindedly twirled a pen between your fingers with furrowed brows.Â
You had tied your hair in a bun as some strands began to fall over your face, working as a distraction â you were already surrounded with an overwhelming distraction, there was no need for more. That simple act had Jake stuttering, fumbling amidst his words and losing track of his thoughts as the hairstyle gave him the privilege to see your bare, beautiful and kissable neck.Â
His hands tingled, urging to touch you there. Would you like to be choked?
Ok, that definitely wasnât physics.Â
Jake fell silent, swallowing hard as you leaned forward to see the drawing he was just explaining, thinking the delay was intentional. When no words came from his mouth and the air suddenly grew thicker, your eyes followed the trail from his fingers to his veiny hands, from his covered torso to his face, hovering longer on how clenched his sharp jaw was and how his Adamâs apple bobbed nervously.
You shot a questioning look, blinking innocently with brows raised just slightly.Â
Jake wavered under your curious, yet somehow intense gaze, averting it immediately in order to regain his conscious back. Your lips had pursed into a small pout that did nothing to help his way out of his messy head.
Everything he could think about was how bad he wanted to kiss you.
âSomethingâs wrong?â Your velvety voice enveloped the room, a naive question with a supposedly simple answer that got caught in Jakeâs throat.
Jake never saw you as a potential partner or lover, let alone as an object of his desire.Â
You were Jayâs little sister that he cared for as if his own. He saw you grow up, he watched you achieving your goals and got inspired by your strength to overcome the toxic place you had to call a house. Jake cherished your relationship with Jay, grateful for both of you having each other, and that was pretty much you to him.
Even in those times when he treated you to ice cream and snacks during his college breaks, when he visited his parents back home, he kept you in a certain specific spot in his life â something close to family.
He loved to tease you, exactly like a mischievous older brother, laughing when you tripped, when your mouth was stained with chocolate, or when you fumbled through words while talking about your school crush.
Jake had always seen you as a younger sister he needed to look out for.
Until you grew up.
He couldnât pinpoint exactly when the switch happened, when he stopped seeing you as a little girl he had to tease and began noticing you as a ridiculously attractive woman, but seeing you in person after two years definitely played a role in that.
Jake had been your closest company through your first two years of high school, filling the role of an older brother, a place Jay couldnât quite manage to fill because of his own study and work demands, unwillingly.Â
During your last year of high school you stopped seeing Jake, as he had gotten caught up in the same cycle as your brother: studying and working. And you completely understood, knowing that soon enough you would be in a similar place.
Then you graduated and started your own college journey, and Jake, deep into his own responsibilities, went another year without seeing you.
It was at the beginning of your sophomore year in college that you two crossed paths again â at a party when Jay finally agreed to take you with him, after much persistence on your part.
Jake froze.
Jake quite literally forgot how to breathe, forgot how to blink, how to properly work as a human the moment his eyes landed on you, stunning in a short, wine-colored dress, casually holding a drink in your hand.
Jake didnât remember your body looking anything like that, used to seeing you in casual, loose clothing rather than that fitted, short dress that framed your thighs so perfectly, drawing his hungry gaze to stare as a starved man, with a subtle neckline that hinted at the curve of your chest.
Hot.
That was all he could think. Until he realized it was you.
He remembered it vividly: watching you from behind as you danced, immediately struck by how attractive that random woman seemed to be. But as his gaze traveled upward and found your face, he froze, utterly overwhelmed with shock and panic. Especially when you noticed him looking, shooting a cute, surprised smile and a little wave, almost as if you were going to come over.
To say he ran away from there was close to an euphemism, rushing over the bathroom within a lame excuse thrown at his friends before heading back home after using the barâs back door as his way out.
The walk home was painful. Jakeâs head was filled with nasty thoughts that made him completely unable to disable it from happening, swirling around in a dirty carousel.Â
Jake felt like a naughty, filthy pervert. You were Jayâs little sister. The one he played innocently with, hung out countless times without the slightest thought of having you as a true woman; and if the thought ever crossed his mind, he would feel disgusted, because it made no sense and was wrong.
So, the only way to overcome your effect on him was to ignore you at every possible opportunity, not expecting you to care that much about it.
It was a stupid choice, an asshole one even. You used to be friends and now he would rather choose to be eaten by a bear than see you up close and act normal.
Jayâs sudden plan of asking for his help was the start of his downfall for you, and now he was dealing with the consequences of his previous decisions.Â
âJakey?â
The nickname. The fucking nickname you last called him years ago, now sounding even mellow and sweeter, yet as sultry as ever. Jake wondered how would it be to have you underneath him, moaning his name as if your life depended on it with his dick buried deep into your cunt.
âYâYeah?âÂ
Jake immediately damned himself for the stutter, afraid of being too obvious with his nervous reaction. He made the mistake of looking at you, trying to act as normal as possible, and somehow his brain managed to picture your oh, so cute eyes fluttering close as he pleasured you.
His face heated instantly, as if fire was being spread all over his skin. His body was hot as hell, the loosen pants now not so comfortable as before, tightening on his crotch area.
âWhat happened?â
You nonchalantly touched his covered forearm as you asked, concern written all over your face as you struggled to understand what was happening. Jake's abrupt reaction of moving away from your soft hands startled you a little, your head cocking to the side as you frowned, reading Jakeâs widened and panicked eyes.
Unaware of the real deal, oblivious to the torrent of emotions and feelings dancing inside Jakeâs head and chest, you started to feel really annoyed.
Was Jake slipping back into that strange, sudden habit of ignoring you, like he had been since you had started crossing paths again?
There was no plausible explanation for his reaction. The two of you used to go out together all the time, comfortable touches being a natural part of your relationship â especially since Jake was almost ridiculously clingy with his close friends.Â
When the whole âavoiding youâ situation first started you were very confused and questioned what you did wrong. Then you grew mad and eventually got over it since you had no contact at all with Jake throughout the following months, nearly forgetting his existence.Â
But now you had to face it all again, confronting the feelings you once went through; a familiar bitter blend of anger and hurt. It stung like reopening a wound you thought it healed. Exposed, sensitive, vulnerable, bringing back memories you hoped to erase.
âNothing happenââ
âWhy did you stop talking to me?â
Your interruption was as abrupt as Jakeâs reaction to your close presence earlier. He noticed the spark of rage flashing your two orbs suddenly, causing him to blink, caught off guard, eyes widening even bigger if it was possible, trying to understand what you just had hit him with.
âHuh?â
You let out a frustrated huff before repeating yourself even more mad, your hands traveling to your hair fix some random strands as an anxious fidgeting habit to ground you.Â
âYou started to ignore and avoid me. Did I do something wrong? Did I piss you off?â
Jake was taken aback with your outburst of questions, lips parted, words caught somewhere down his throat. There was something close to a knot pressing the back of his tongue that made it hard to speak steadily.
âWhat do you mean?â
âYou know exactly what I mean, Jake.â You sighed, expression softening just slightly, studying his face. âWe used to hang out. We were friends, even.â
Jake exhaled, biting his lip as a way to hold back his words. If he let it all out, he would scare you so fucking bad.Â
âYes, when you were younger.â
âWhat changed?â
You saw how his shoulders tensed, his neck moving as he swallowed hard, demonstrating to feel flustered under your inquisitive gaze. His eyes dropped to his lap, where one of his hands rested comfortably. He dug the depths of his thoughts to keep it as safe and subtle as possible, not wanting to pour it all on you.
âI... I always saw you as a little sister. Thatâs how I looked at you, like family.â
You nodded along, following his soft-spoken speech. You didn't understand what exactly he was aiming for with it so far, so you let him continue, hoping it would bring a closure for your relationship to blossom again.
âBut thenââ He hesitated, eyes flickering up to you and then drifting away. His voice dropped an octave as he added. âI got overwhelmed with my last year in college and eventually with my work. So I didn't have time to see you often. Life just got⌠Busy.â
Deep down he knew you wouldnât buy his lame explanation. However, didnât stop him from holding tightly the small string of hope you would let it pass.Â
At the same time, he had a tingling feeling telling him to blurt out everything he went through when you were the subject. How hard it was to act normal when Jay talked about you, to not get hard seeing your cute instagram pictures, not picture himself getting lost in the middle of your plush thighs.Â
God, you worked him up too easily.
âI get that part, I really do,â you replied, boldly and kind of unconsciously placing your hand on top of Jake's. This time he didnât flinch, taking in your soft, innocent touch. Still, his breath hitched. âBut when I moved here, you started avidly avoiding me,â you continued, voice dropping to something near a whisper as your fingers traced delicate patterns on the back of his hand. âYouâd ignore me at parties, never stopping by to visit. I just didnât understand.â
Jake shifted uncomfortably on his seat, embarrassed of your accurate analysis.
âThe visiting part is Jay's fault. He was the one who suggested for him to go to our house instead of us three coming over here. Just⌠Making things easier, I guess.â
âThat makes sense,â you murmured, pulling your hand away as you realized the weight of the intimacy, afraid of being too weird. âBut the avoiding and ignoring me⌠It doesn't make any.â
Jake closed his eyes briefly, taking a deep sigh. There were no more ways to run away from the topic; his weak excuses had long been overrun by the intensity of your pressing curiosity. You were ready to dig deep and uncover the truth at any cost. Jake knew you well enough to expect this â your persistence, your determination, your stubbornness were traits he had always admired in you and your brother.
âIâm sorry.â
âIf you can explain why youâre sorry, maybe Iâll accept it,â you challenged, arching a brow and immediately grabbing his attention. You knew Jakeâs competitive side and loved to play with it as a coaxing manner to get what you wanted.
You watched his eyes wavering just enough to make you wonder if your tactic would work that time. But then, he chuckled dryly, blinking away from your awaiting expression.
âIâm sorry for acting like that, Y/N.â He started. âIâ I panicked,â his voice was subtle as a feather. If you werenât alone and far from the noise happening in your living room, you doubt you would be able to hear it clearly.Â
âPanicked?â you echoed, confusion knitting your brow, your head tilting just slightly. âOver what?â
Jakeâs face turned a deeper shade of red, especially on his cheeks and on the top of his ears. You got even more puzzled, especially after he answered with just a single word.
âYou.â
You.Â
It hung in the heavy air as thick as a volcanoâs smoke, deepening your confusion, your heart starting to beat faster and your hands getting sweaty.Â
âMe? What do you mean?â
You didn't expect your voice to sound so quiet as you spoke, but you got somehow caught by surprise with how things turned out.Â
So you really did something wrong?
âYou⌠grew up, Y/N. Youâreââ He struggled to find the right words, shifting uncomfortably once more, his eyes traveling between the floor, the table and his lap, never daring to look into your eyes. âIâm sorry, but youâre beautiful. And⌠more than that. Youâre⌠Youâre hot.â
An awkward and tense silence filled the room right after Jakeâs stained voice trailed off at the end of his sentence, as if he wished he could swallow them back together with the knot on his throat.
Now that he had just verbalized the main reason for his behavior towards you, he was feeling extremely disgusting and pathetic. He could feel the weight of his own shame pressing down, and an almost nauseating guilt pushing at him; a reminder he was wrong for allowing you to go out from the safe and special spot as a âlittle sisterâ in his heart, to occupy a darker and more lustful one.
It wasnât your fault, though. Jake would never in his life blame you for a mistake he had authorized to happen. This wasnât just a fleeting, harmless slip; he had seen you, had filthy thoughts before fully realizing it was you. And afterwards he did nothing much to stop those thoughts from creeping back in, the only option being avoiding you instead of facing it as a true man.
He swallowed hard once more â becoming a natural habit at that point â and forced himself to look up for a brief moment. All he saw was your stunned expression, mouth slightly agape and eyes apparently trying to search for some kind of joke, to which it only fueled the growing dread inside him.
Jakeâs mind was a spiral. The fragile line he had been teetering about you began to fall apart as he realized that you would probably cut him off completely, screaming at him the words he deserved to hear.Â
A creepy, weird and disgusting man.Â
His pulse quickened, panic creeping in with every second that you didnât speak, an urge to break the silence immediately, as if maintaining his being in it would drive him completely insane. With that in mind, he opened his mouth to babble.
âIâ I donât expect you to understand. God, I wouldnât even blame you if you decide to never speak to me again. Iâm sureâ Iâm sure we can arrange an excuse to Jay about your study, or even tell the truthâ Iâmââ He cut himself briefly to look away from you, who still had your same expression. His hands were busy gesturing anxiously. âI know I crossed a very dangerous line. Itâs so fucking wrong andâ And Iâve tried to come up with anything to push it away, even ignore it. But then, thereâs you.â
Jakeâs voice faltered, as though his world was colliding, ending, as though he was on the verge of losing his mind somehow.Â
He was.
âThereâs always you, looking like some kind of goddess that makes me go insane.â
The realization of what you just heard made your pulse quicken. Jakeâs babbling worked perfectly to ground you and, ironically enough, to send you back to heaven, as you felt like dreaming after hearing his first sayings.Â
Over the years you thought about having Jake in other ways rather than just a friend or an older brother, but never quite grasping to it completely due to the small, yet existing age gap and the different stages of life drifting you apart.Â
To acknowledge how Jake really felt towards you was similar to living in a vivid fever dream, it got you clenching your thighs, panties pathetically dampening just enough to make you shy, as if he would become aware of your body reacting to his words.
You opened your mouth to respond, to try to find any words that could make sense in between the mess of emotions happening inside you; relief, desire, passion. But before you could even begin, a familiar voice cut through the tension, as sharp as a knife, startling both of you as if you had been caught red-handed.
âHow's study going?â
After Jay broke into your studying session with Jake and consequently interrupted the development of your newfound possibility of relationship with the said guy, you couldnât help but dive into a sea of frustration.Â
Jake immediately panicked and ran away, muttering a lame excuse that he had things to take care of and he would catch up with you later, leaving you sitting there, bewildered, confused and angry â with him and with you brother, who even though had no fault, shattered your chances to voice out your side of the story and maybe, just maybe, get Jake to your bedroom.
Jay didnât flinch a little, aware of how Jake could be impulsive and random with his spontaneous persona and let him go, smiling softly to you after gently stroking your hair and ask if you wanted to relax with him and the remaining guys, thinking you could use some of it after the long minutes you spent studying.Â
You were quick to dismiss the offer, seizing the opportunity to excuse yourself to your room, pretending to be really tired and to need some time alone after reading so much physics hard stuff.
However, as you crashed into your bed and stuffed your head into the soft pillow, your body didnât feel like soothing any time soon, your brain working overtime to remark each and every word uttered by Jake, his low voice as clear as crystal water as it repeated restlessly.Â
Youâre hot. A goddess. Makes me go insane.Â
That night, you met a brand new and nameless sensation. It was close to frustration but layered with the tempting awareness of something you could nearly touch, yet not claim.
Jake ran away, as he always did, without even giving you the proper chance to tell him that, God, you felt the same â perhaps even worse.
His mere act of voicing those genuine, sultry words had already done enough to ruin your self-control â and panties, taking away the opportunity to express just how incredibly irresistible he looked, how you longed to devour every centimeter of his slightly sun-kissed skin, to taste his plush lips, to make him wholly yours.
You asked for Jake's number to Jay the next day, under the pretext of needing to get some extra materials and maybe schedule your following meetings, hoping for it to be reasonable enough. And though Jay willingly accepted and supported your idea, Jake partially ignored you, at most answering your texts with âokâ and âsureâ, never leaving an opening for you to draw him into a longer conversation.
So when Jay served you a stack of pancakes on Monday, you expected everything to happen but what really unfolded.Â
âI scheduled another study session with Jake today. That cool with you?â
The forkful bringing you a piece of your food froze midair, the assimilation of what Jayâs just said made your movements halt shamefully instantly as you raised your eyes only enough to encounter Jayâs relaxed face.
âMhm?â
âJakeâs coming over after work today,â Jay repeated casually, munching his food. âI think he gets off around four, so heâll be here when youâre back from your classes.â
Ok, you definitely â and unfortunately â had heard him right. A spark of excitement and an urge to get yourself dressed extra prettily for college rushed over your body as you straightened your posture on your chair, using of a simple nod to silent agree with the deal.
You feared your words would get stuck on your throat.
âOh, and Iâll be working from home today, so you wonât be alone with him.â
All the efforts were made for you not to choke on your food, but the honey sauce dripping straight down your throat elicited a quiet, small cough from you. You gulped down whatever was on your way to voice out anything, and all you managed was to mutter a confused âHuh?â
Jay smirked at your reaction, but not really reading into it.
âYou know, just in case,â he shrugged nonchalantly and your brow furrowed, stomach twisting with nervousness.
âJust in case of what, exactly?â
You damned yourself for using such a fearful tone, like a frightened kid that had hidden a secret from their parents, leaving gaps for an overinterpretation that Jay could try doing if he was devoted to completely understanding the strange way you were acting.
You deeply wondered if he knew about whatever happened with you and Jake that Friday, or worse, if he eavesdropped on Jake's confession about how he felt about you.
It wasnât like Jay would be fine with Jake coming over if he did in fact know or heard the conversation. And knowing your brother, he would rather have a civilized and polite conversation with you instead of playing around.Â
âI donât know, Y/N,â Jay started, a glint of mischief twinkling in his eyes. âYou hate physics and I called Jake to come teach physics to you. The other day, you were kneading that pizza dough like it owed you money. Donât know what youâd do to someone whoâs a walking physics encyclopedia.â
Your pulse quickened, but your shoulders loosened. Gladly, Jay had already moved on the subject, unbothered, yapping about how he preferred doing his job from home and how annoying it was to deal with paperwork in person. All you could do was to nod along, anxiously counting the minutes.
With almost absolute certainty, none of your classes that day could hold your attention. And so it was. The professors' words seemed like random sound waves, failing to form coherent sentences for you, and you had to fight the constant urge to get up from your chair and leave, even though you knew Jake wouldn't be there yet.
Mondays were exhausting. You had to attend multiple classes, and especially that day there were practical lectures that kept you stuck on campus later than usual. By the end of the day, despite the exhaustion, you were still buzzing with anticipation.
You practically ran back to the apartment you shared with your brother, trying not to make too much effort and break a sweat â after all, you wouldn't have time for a shower or to get dressed properly before seeing Jake.
You felt like a teenager nervously preparing to meet her crush in the hallways between classes; your hands were trembling, your whole body thrilling with excitement, as if each part of you was electrified with anticipation.
Your heart pounded relentlessly, as if each beat echoed louder than the last, straight into your eardrums. The closer you got to your shared apartment, the harder it became to calm your racing thoughts, and the overwhelming mix of excitement and nervousness almost made you dizzy when you grabbed the door knob and twisted it open.Â
Jake was sprawled on your couch, golden specs casually resting on his face and his brown, silky hair poking to different places since he was playing with it nonchalantly while the other hand held his phone. His eyes raised up from the screen when he heard the sound of the door opening, and with a subtle smile he greeted you.
âHi, Y/N.âÂ
Your gaze instinctively hovered across the room, searching for Jayâs presence. At the same time, you fought against the urge to make yourself comfortable with Jake on your couch. He looked so inviting, cozy and fluffy laying in there, his demeanor soft and relaxed, nearly pulling you close, drifting your thoughts away from reality.
It took seconds for it to hit harshly, as you remembered the intimacy that had once been so natural between the two of you no longer existed, and the possibility of reclaiming that closeness felt slightly out of reach. It was a bitter thought, one that reminded you how fragile things had become.
However, for Jakeâs misfortune you werenât one to give up so easily, now aware of his feelings and thoughts towards you, there was no way to back down so quickly. Not knowing he nourished a desire strong enough to make him opt to avoid you in order to get over it.Â
âHeâs in his office room,â Jake explained when noticed what you were doing, kindly breaking you out of your trance.
âOh,â you mumbled, nodding awkwardly. Jake sat straight on the couch, eyes boldly locking into yours as he did so.
You licked your lips out of habit, a bit taken aback with the idea of being in a room alone with him again, the anxiety you had built up throughout the day exploding in your chest just like fireworks.
The slightest motion of your tongue dragging along your plump, cherry colored lips didnât go unnoticed by Jakeâs nervous gaze. His eyes flickered downwards right after, and you silently cheered when he took his time to appreciate your bare thighs in full display for him.Â
You had chosen an outfit that was simple yet comfortable, but also bold, different from what you had planned for the day before knowing you would spend time with Jake; a relatively oversized sweater that would protect you from the gentle breeze of the day, paired with a short skirt that highlighted your rounded thighs â thighs you knew Jake would enjoy seeing.
And he so fucking did. The way he parted his lips, swallowed nothing, and shifted uncomfortably on his seat confirmed your theory.Â
Jakeâs cheeks warmed when he realized what he just did, checking you out carelessly and right in front of your beautiful eyes. He cleared his throat, ready to throw some random small talk to guide the situation to the real deal â the whole studying thing â, but you had other plans.Â
âIâm not mad.âÂ
After years sharing moments with Jake, having him practically living in your house similar to a family member, you had gathered enough sources to know Jake was torturing himself with a guilt you didnât see to be necessary, not when you desired him as much as he wanted you, not when things could be as simple as one plus one.Â
Jake was smart enough to catch onto what you were referring to, still, he hesitated, quirking an eyebrow in disbelief. He remained silent, waiting for your following words when you opened your mouth and closed, as though struggling to find the best, right ones.Â
Your feet moved towards his direction and you took the seat beside him, keeping a safe distance. A distance that would keep yourself under control not to jump on his lap, tug his hair with your hands while kissing him passionately, using your hips to rut onto his bulge, aiming to hear his lascivious noises.
Swallowing your impulsive thoughts back, deep on your throat, you continued.Â
âIâm not mad that youâŚâ Holding back a shy smile, you bit your lip. âIâm not mad that you think Iâm hot.â
Your voice came out as quiet as possible. The fleeting sensation of being heard by your brother weighed heavy on the air, pushing you to keep it as hushed as you could.Â
Once more, Jake shifted on his seat, his own fluster increasing after hearing you voicing out his last confession. He didnât feel stupid, though. It was impossible to feel anything other than thrilled.
He couldnât pinpoint precisely what turn that conversation with you would be taking; the small hint of fear creeped his chest, but the excitement of positively reading the situation was deliciously overgrowing it.Â
âBut we have to talkâŚâ You tried to sound firm, yet gentle, not wanting to scare him away. The way your eyes rested on his face made Jakeâs heart skip a beat. You were so fucking beautiful. âYou know, I didnât tell you about my part in this story.â
Jake felt his body untensing with your relaxed, tempting even, words; the atmosphere heavy but not with anything bad. It felt suffocating in the bestest way possible, as if a hundred of amazing possibilities could unfold, each of them having your lips pressing against his as a starter and his dick buried deep in you as a finisher.
âDo we?â Jake tilted his head to the side, eyes gleaming with teasing after the realization. The same behavior he would have with you was brought back in a snap, nonetheless, you doubted your strength to deal with it, especially when his two brown orbs showed a hint of something darker. Â
âYes.â
A quiet, feather-like whisper. It was all you managed to say, failing to keep up with your steady, collected image.
âOkay, we can talk,â he nodded softly, and though his eyes showed affection, the faint smirk adorning the corner of his lips triggered your inner core to pleasantly twist.
Jake leaned closer, now relaxed before your presence; your compliant demeanor easing his way through it, taunting his bolder side to shine brighter. Your breath hitched when his eyes wandered your face carefully, his body nearly pressing yours as he drank in your perfect features before gently grabbing your chin to pull you closer.
He was centimeters away from touching you where you needed him the most â firstly. Because your entire being craved for him.Â
âBut unfortunately, I have to teach you physics before, pretty.â
That was how you ended up sitting at your desk after announcing your arrival to your brother, saying you would be with Jake in your bedroom for studies purposes.
Bullshit.
Jake brought an extra chair to sit by your side, and you truly made double effort to keep your focus on whatever he was explaining, but his words sounded slurred, vague, like a baby talk. His voice and accent were unnecessarily attractive, inducing your head to concentrate on its sounds instead of the meaning. Not to mention his fucking kissable lips, so, so, so close, yet so far.Â
Each time your eyes darted to the side, you caught a glimpse of his side profile. Distracting, beautiful, captivating.
Jake had a nose you swore it was sculpted by the finest, most talented artist; sharp and smooth just right, softly curved at the tip, gorgeously displayed on his handsome face. That high bridge triggered your most profound and dirty thoughts, your eyes dropping to a darker shade almost instantly as you got drunk on his features.Â
Jakeâs whole being was attractive, tempting, a living demon who now taunted your worst behavior and you loved every bit of it. Alongside that, the unveiling situation between the two of you was eating you alive, slowly consuming your mind.
After the little study session you agreed on talking about the dangerously unspoken matter, with the hope of resolving things. On your bed, if you were lucky.
You wanted to have Jakeâs hands exploring your body, gripping and pulling you closer, pressing you against the mattress while fucking you from behind, hard, deep, fast, whatever he decided to. You needed his lips marking your neck, his face stuffed between your legs, his mouth working on your pussy while you screamed his name.Â
You could almost feel how his tongue would work perfectly in your clit, licking, sucking andâ
âAnd thatâs how thermodynamics works. Itâs amazing, isnât it?âÂ
You blinked confused towards Jake, feeling just a little bad for not really enjoying your private lessons as much as he was. It was cute to see how talkative he became whenever physics was the topic, and extremely hot to witness his smart brain working in full motion to explain every word to you.
Nonetheless your attention span was long gone, ever since his scent started to intoxicate your senses, making you wish to have it all over your skin with his body hovering yours.Â
âBut of course youâd be paying more attention to my lips and my nose.â
You widened your eyes, speechless. Jake clicked his tongue, shaking his head in a faux discontentment. You trembled on your seat, unconsciously moving back from the closeness of your bodies; there was a fear creeping in your head of losing your inner battle to the raw passion tingling your skin.
âListen, Y/N. Iâm really trying here. Iâd appreciate it if you did some effort too.âÂ
Jake was once again teetering the same risky line, this time with less hesitation, his confidence bubbling as he realized you wouldn't be pushing him away.
The moment he caught your hungry your devouring him throughout the entire tutoring, how willingly to let him in you seemed to be, devoted to the idea of fucking under your brotherâs roof, he threw his self control away and started to think with his other head.Â
You gulped, eyes lowering to your notebook peacefully resting on your desk.Â
âIâm sorry, Jake.â
âYâknow what?â Jake suddenly stood up, offering his hand with his gorgeous slender fingers full of silver rings for you to grab. âComâere.âÂ
Your squinted eyes flickered between his digits and his face, searching for some proper explanation that unfortunately you didn't receive. So you followed his steps, standing up as well and shivering with the touch of his mildly cold skin against yours.
With the way Jake grinned, your stomach tightened, fearing whatever he had on his mind. Trying not to be so obvious with your embarrassing reactions, you frowned.
âWhat are we doiââ
âThe first law in thermodynamics is that energy canât be destroyed or created, it can only change forms.â
He said his speech within his teacher-like tone once more, interrupting you without caring to explain why standing up and explaining it to you again would make the material magically settle inside your brain.
Especially when you wanted to settle on your bed with him on top of you.
âWhat the fââ
âSo, if I do this,â Jake raised a hand, gently placing it on your right cheek. You winced and retracted a bit with the unexpected soft brush of his slightly cold skin on your, now, heated face. âDo you feel it?â He whispered, fingertips tracing the warm flesh underneath his touch, his body instinctively getting closer to yours as his eyelids softened. âThe heat of your skin will work its way to make mine less cold, yâknow? Mine is absorbing from yours, to stabilize our temperatures together. The energy isnât being destroyed nor created, itâs transferred from one body to another until they find the perfect equilibrium.â
It was pathetic the way you nodded along, Jakeâs words and presence reverberating throughout your body similar to a wave of pure pleasure, your eyes sparkling with a mix of curiosity and shock with this new method.Â
So, physics can be interesting, huh?
âNow,â Jake got closer, his voice dropping an octave while the hand that held yours found comfort on your waist, eliciting an immediate gasp from you. âQuestion: what happens when two equally heated bodies touch each other?âÂ
Jakeâs face was just a few centimeters away from yours, his lips ghosting, tempting a kiss you wished to happen as soon as possible; he seemed to be testing the waters, glad that you allowed him to do so.
The way his warm breath tickled your skin was dizzying, yet addictive. You shivered, respiration quickening with the way Jakeâs eyes dropped, almost closing, as he got charmed by your soft, plump and oh, so kissable lips.
There was no adequate explanation to how your body reflexively reacted to his stimulus, your hands traveling slowly to grip onto something as a way to ground yourself, finding the thin fabric of Jakeâs shirt on your way through it.Â
âNothingââ You gulped when you started talking, because the simple motion had your lips grazing Jakeâs. He nodded reassuringly, as a way to incite you to keep speaking, the grip on his shirt tightening. âNothing changes.â
Your eyes lazily fluttered close and open, the tension nearly palpable in the air. Out of habit, you wetted your lips with your tongue; a habit that now got you brushing it against Jakeâs lips as well. His breath hitched, surprised, but he didnât stutter.Â
âYeah,â Jake muttered, letting his hand thread through your strands, tugging it gently. You moaned softly, lips parted, a small frown gracing your features.Â
Jake drunkenly groaned, throwing caution and patience aside with your reaction. Fuck, his self control was down to hell and for seconds he forgot where he was, because you were everything and everywhere in his head.Â
He could feel how tight his pants became as his dick twitched for some attention, hard and heavy.
âYouâre a quick learner when thereâs practice involved, arenât you?â
Jakeâs lips were now grazing featherly on the sensitive flesh of your neck, teasing to kiss but never truly giving in.
You didnât even notice how much you were leaning into his touch, as within every tempting brush on your skin you melted deeper, growing impatient each passing second.
Your fingers boldly slipped underneath his shirt, tracing the subtle lines of the abs you dreamed of licking and kissing and sucking and⌠God, you were on the verge of crying out of desperation. Your fingernails dug harder into his skin, eliciting a jolt from Jake that immediately pressed you against himself in response.
âPlease, Jakeyââ You whimpered when you felt his hardened bulge poking you, together with â finally â his wet kisses on your neck, nibbling gently the area with an aching slow.
Jake chuckled in contact with your sensitive skin, loving the way you tilted your head to give him more access, loving the way you were needily pressing yourself on his body, loving the way your hands involved his waist firmly; goosebumps flushed over as he delighted in your sweet and lascivious noises and responses.Â
A phantom of a smirk tugged the corner of Jakeâs glistening lips as he trailed soft little pecks through your jawline and near to your mouth, laughing gently with the way you searched instantly for more with hooded eyes.
âWanâ me to kiss you, pretty?â Jake asked, voice thick with raw desire. He now held you with both hands on your hips, one shamelessly lowering to your ass every so often, while yours glided over his chest until they reached his firm shoulders.
You watched Jakeâs eyes flash with a mischievous spark and you promptly knew that you could play that game too. So instead of answering right away, you feigned the purest expression you could, batting your eyelashes deliberately as you looked up to him, big doe eyes twinkling with a playful innocence.Â
Jake wavered under your gaze, breath twitching, clearly weak to your tactics already. You held back your smile, keeping your faux naivety; the single action fueling Jakeâs craving deeper.
âOnly if you want it too, Jakey.â
You had no right to sound so pure, as if you were immaculate, untouched, never once ruined, yet dripping with lust and desire. So fucking filthy.Â
âFuck, doll.â Jake muttered faintly, not holding back anymore, his jaw clenching as he harshly dragged you over the room, far from gently as he pushed you to bounce on the soft mattress of your bed. âIâll kiss you,â he said, hovering on top of your body, the excitement bubbling pleasantly in your low area. âAnd then Iâll fuck you so, so fucking hard.â
You giggled, getting comfortable on your bed as Jake positioned himself between your legs, which hugged him naturally. As he lowered his face to do as he said, you smirked.Â
âIs that a promise?â
Jakeâs eyes darkened, pupils wide showing you a sea of unknown feelings you never thought you would witness with him. His lips curved into a slow, teasing smile, one hand trailing deliberately the curve of your hip, your waist, chest, until it was gently wrapped around your neck.Â
âBet.âÂ
Driven by a mutual need, Jake dived into you passionately, almost desperate. You let out an instantaneous satisfied moan with the feeling of his soft lips pressing harshly on yours, one hand flying to take place on his silky, thick strands, the other gripping his wrist, keeping his hand in place on your throat.Â
It took seconds to have Jakeâs wet tongue infiltrating the electric touch and unapologetically searching for yours while his body grinded just slightly against your clothed cunt, making it pulse in desperation, dampening the fabric of your panties.
You tried to remember if you had locked the door beforehand, the faintest peak of your moral appearing just to be completely vanished, forgotten due to the vibrations of Jakeâs small noises; his groans sent signals straight to your throbbing core, each clutch of your fingers tangled on his locks igniting a new sound that you discovered to be your favorite.Â
Jake tightened his fingers around your throat faintly, starting a path of sloppy kisses down to your neck and shoulders, his hot tongue savoring each piece of your exposed smooth skin, and everything you could do was to squirm underneath him, struggling to maintain your sounds low.
With your movement, you accidentally brushed your knee on Jakeâs crotch area the exact same moment he released your throat, causing him to open-mouth moan and frown, lips now working on your covered breasts, busying his free hand to squeeze your hips; just the fleeting contact of his heavy, still clothed, dick against your body fueled your craving deeper, your hands gripping on his strands harder.
âJake, can you please hurry up?â You said in between a moan when he nibbled your nipple over your shirt. âWeâ We canât be caught.â
Jake looked up at you, beholding the view of your beautiful fucked out expression with just a few minutes of making out while his hands explored your body. He would bet millions that underneath your underwear, you had already made a mess â the thought alone enough to make him gulp, thrilled to feel your spongy drippy walls enveloping his throbbing length.Â
âNewtonâs third law,â Jake mumbled suddenly against your stomach, eyes glazed in yours that now showed a confused state, eyes sparkling with pure desire. He curled his fingers on the waistband of your sweatpants, lowering it enough to give him access to your laced underwear. âFor every action, thereâs a reaction.âÂ
His explanation didnât do much for you to understand right away, your frown deepening asking why he would say that so out of the blue. But as soon as he pressed his fingers over your panties and started to draw circles on your clit, you kind of got it.Â
âShit,â you whispered within a whimper, rolling your hips forward as a way to get more of what Jake was offering you, making his lips curl with a satisfied grin. âI swear to GâGodâŚâ
The slowness of his movements got you sighing in frustration. It was clear he was playing with you â quite literally â, and the possibility of Jay hearing you two or even worse, bursting the door open and caughting you mid-act was as frightening as arousing.
Having to be quiet, to keep it down, to not raise suspicions. You clenched around nothing. Jake nearly felt it.
His tongue was constantly wetting his lips, mouth watering, his breath heavy, eager, like a starved man who had his favorite meal on full display but couldnât do anything other than⌠watch.
You angrily propped yourself on your elbows, tugging Jakeâs hair to pull him back to be face-to-face with you, his fingertips never stopping the circles on your cunt. Your lips were centimeters away from each other, eyes hooded, deepened in lust. Jake saw a remnant of your playful aura getting lost amidst the lewd words that came out of your mouth.
âYou canât keep up with your promises, I see,â you murmured, your voice low, sultry, laced with challenge; the smirk dancing on your lips heightened the defianceâs level, triggering Jakeâs pulse to quicken. His breath caught as he arched an eyebrow âShould I ask you to leave so I can finish this myself?â You teased, pulling his head to the side by tightening your grip on his locks. âAre you all talk, Jaeyun?â
Jake froze for a brief moment, his mind working hard to connect your words, and the moment it did, his features hardened, utterly lured by your bait; jaw clenched, eyes darker, breath ragged. It dropped to a deeper shade of craving, raw and delightful.
Your core buzzed with anticipation and you unconsciously let out a gasp when Jake pulled you to lay back down on the soft mattress by the waist, hands immediately removing the last piece of cloth that covered your lower body, quickly to undress himself from his own shirt and jeans, exposing his torso and his hardened cock pressing against his underwear.
Absurdly hot.Â
Jake was absurdly hot.Â
A single silver necklace graced his beautiful neck in contrast with his subtly tanned skin, his chest, toned enough to drive you insane, rose and fell faintly. The way his perfect v-line drew your attention towards his underwear seemed almost purposeful, the stained portion on the thin fabric around his tip got your mouth watering. One thing you were sure of: Jake was big.
He smirked with the way you devoured him whole with your filthy gaze, feeling as much wanted as he desired you too. He playfully dropped his eyes down to his own cock just to glance at you before getting completely naked, catching just enough of your reaction over his bare body.
You had little to no time to appreciate the view as Jake hovered over you quickly, propping himself in between your spreaded legs. Your eyes gleamed with longing and your mouth fell agape when Jake started to glide his dick on your wet folds. He couldnât hold back a groan with the feeling too, eager to get your pussy hugging his shaft.
âCondom?â He asked, lips kissing the corner of your mouth while waiting for your answer about where to find the said protection. Your immediate reply got him throbbing.
âNo.â
Jake fully halted his hips, looking you dead in the eye, and when he saw nothing other than certain, he groaned. âFuck, pretty. You canât say thââ
âRaw, Jaeyun.â You repeated yourself, fingernails digging deep on his biceps, a moan escaping from your lips when his heavy cock brushed your clit.
âDamn,â he mumbled against your neck, aligning his length within your pulsing, drippy hole, aching to be fulfilled.
As Jakeâs tip pressed against you, a messy kiss took place of your mouths in order to muffle your noises, sloppy and hot, tongues everywhere, teeth pressing each otherâs bottom lip harshly, caring little to nothing about hurting.
You whimpered with the feeling of him filling you so good, going deeper and deeper each passing second. When he finally buried himself completely, a groan got lost in between your kisses, and he kept still while you adjusted, though it was extremely hard to wait when you tightened your walls so perfectly around him.Â
âYouâ You feel so good,â he muttered against your lips, voice weak, losing himself in the feeling with his face contorting in pure pleasure as he licked and sucked your bottom lip, asking for more kisses.
The wording and how he said it got you clenching more and Jake felt it right away, your eyes fluttering close as he didnât hold back and started thrusting on you slowly. He was so deep and intense on you, yet deliberate, a pacing you would curse if you werenât enjoying that much.Â
A soft knock on your bedroom door interrupted the blissful moment, panic instantly taking over your faces as you widened your eyes and gasped, instinctively covering your mouth with your hand.Â
âShit,â you whispered, looking at the closed door over Jakeâs shoulder, your heart beating loud inside your chest.
You never prayed so hard for a door to be locked.
âY/N?â Jay calmy called out from the other side.
âAnswer him.â Jake whispered demandingly against your cheek, enjoying it a bit too much for your liking, especially because if you two got caught, it wasnât just you who would get screwed.Â
His eyes scanned your expression, how heavy was your breathing, how bright with fear your eyes shone, although there was a thick layer of pleasure not hiding your enjoyment of the situation.Â
âYeah?â You tried your hardest to sound steady and not stained, but it became a difficult mission when Jake was pushing himself even deeper within each deliberate roll, clearly searching to hit your sensitive spot.Â
âAre you alright? Did Jake leave already?â
Your eyes darted over to Jake, who was keeping the grind slow, painfully slow. You arched an eyebrow, not saying a word as you waited for the man on top of you to decide if he was going to lie to his best friend or not.
Jake smirked.
âNo, Iâm still here,â he kind of shouted, biting his bottom lip to contain a whimper when you tugged his hair at the same time you squeezed him with your walls. After realizing his weakness of having his locks being pulled, you started to use it as an advantage. âAnd sheâs fine, weâreââ he interrupted himself because of the quiet moan that escaped your parted lips, forehead resting on yours, the fear of being heard creeping stronger, fueling, feeding his arousal to the extreme. âWeâre wrapping things up.â
Jake managed to let it out in one go, luckily and supposedly believable enough for Jay not to try open the door or ask any of you to do it.Â
âOh, um, okay⌠I just finished my work,â Jay said casually. âIâll be in my room if you need me.â
Oh, great. Jayâs room. The one next door.Â
âAlright, bro,â Jake was the only one able to speak, especially because you had now your teeth pressing on his shoulders as a way to keep yourself quiet. âSee you in a few, then.â
You two not-so-patiently waited for the sound of Jayâs footsteps to fade far enough down the hall before continuing, Jakeâs eyes filled with teasing when he looked back at you and immediately started to faster his thrusts, taking in from your instant response of curving your back with lips parted, the slightest moan escaping from them.
âShh, baby girl. Donât make any noises, yeah?â Jake whispered in your ear, his hot breath fanning your skin. With the way his fingertips traced softly your thighs, only to harshly grip into your flesh and pound deeper, you couldnât hold back your whimper, wincing. âShhâŚâ He shushed again, an obvious smirk adorning his plump lips that now rested on swollen ones, his low voice causing your whole body to feel like on fire, skin tingling in despair.
You wanted to scream his name so bad.
âJâJakeâŚâ You moaned underbreath, struggling to keep it quiet. Jake chuckled, amused by your reckless behavior.
âDo you want your brother to hear us, sweetheart?â He asked, filthy, feigning a mocking tone. âI donât think heâd like to know how deep into you Iâm in right now.â
With that, he thrusted once more, hitting your sweet spot right away. You nearly cried as you threw your head back, walls clenching around his dick furiously, fingernails sinking into his flesh, back arching.
Jake grinned, in complete awe with your surrendered, fucked up form, wishing so bad to be able to get more of you â your screams, your whimpers, you chanting his name, anything. He just knew you would sound even hotter.Â
âSuch a dirty little girl. Dying for someone to hear us, huh?âÂ
âNâNoâŚâ You whined, pathetically shaking your head and softly smacking his shoulder as you got lost in yourself. You felt your body starting to convulse as Jake kept on hitting your g-spot over and over, barely noticing he had his forehead resting on yours again, his hard breathing blowing harshly on your face. âCanâtâ So bigââ
You rolled your eyes with the speed of Jakeâs hips increasing. He wanted to go harder and faster, but the slapping sounds were already growing too loud, teetering the edge of getting caught a bit too much. Not to mention the blend of quiet moans, whimpers and groans you both exchanged in between pants and messy kisses.
Within minutes Jake felt the coil on his stomach tightening, his release was near and by the way you started to sound desperate, you were close too.
âIâm not gonâ last much longer, pretty,â Jake hissed when you wrapped your legs around his hips and pushed him deeper, helping him to maintain the rhythm of his thrusts. âFuck...â
You fluttered your eyes open â didnât even remember when you had closed it â right on time to catch a glimpse of Jakeâs necklace dangling close to your face as he propped himself up to ease his pushes, his sweaty hair part sticking to his forehead, part hanging down, grazing softly on your nose.Â
The overwhelming feeling of Jakeâs burying himself deep into you, filling up each centimeter inside your cunt, his scent all over your senses, his sweet and hot silent moans, the way he had a pleasant frown gracing his features, every now and then biting his lip.
You felt your orgasm building up in a delightful, electrifying wave that flushed your trembling body.
âI wannaââ
âCome to me, baby,â Jake urged you, his own climax teetering the edge, voice cracking. âWanâ feel you creaming my cock.â
A mild louder noise escaped your lips as you shivered, legs shaking with the amount of pressure your body was releasing. Jake bursted right after your juices coated his length, stuffing you up with his warm seed.
Your heavy breaths filled the room for a while. Jakeâs tired body pressing against yours within an intimacy that made your heart flutter, realization hitting that you just had fucked your crush, who just happened to be your brotherâs best friend.
You closed your eyes, a sting of a bittersweet feeling growing inside your chest.Â
âWe still need to talk.â
The talk never really happened, since the constant visits unfolded your relationship with Jake better than you expected.
It seemed to be a no strings attached type of relationship, with you and Jake kissing and fucking anytime you had the chance to in between your tutoring classes.
You couldnât help but feel guilty, and foolish to some extent, because tasting Jake's body and mouth awakened the same feelings of love you once buried deep within you, feelings that you now had to bury again, fully aware that they werenât nearly reciprocated.
Jake probably saw you as woman he could fuck, and you thought you could live with that.
Your encounters with Jake became as usual as your classes, and gratefully Jay obliviousness blinded him from the real thing happening under his roof, because in no world you would need everyday physics lessons, even with your tough relationship with it.Â
At some point you started to believe that your tactics to restrain yourself around Jake had been perfected.
When Jake changed his behavior with you, avoiding you at parties and the other events where you both accidentally crossed paths, Jay never suspected a thing. First, because he knew how busy Jake was with his work, and second, because he believed friendships were flexible and often riddled with uncontrollable nuances â meaning, you and Jake were simply going through a phase where things werenât aligning.
It became routine to pretend you were still in the same cycle, with Jake acting as a casual friend who was just helping you with your studies enough to pass the course.
Jay had no idea you had promised Jake that you would only let him eat you out if you aced your exams â although you would let him do it anyway.
It was just so fun to watch him throw tantrums at you, whining how much he needed to feel your cunt pulsing and dripping on his tongue. You couldnât deny the excitement of receiving a head from Jake was big; the way he kissed you and how high bridged his nose was, were enough proof that he would do a hell of a job.
As the semester was reaching its end, your anxiety grew.
You felt secure in most of your subjects, because even though Jake was actively present in your life, you managed to find out time to focus on your individual studies and felt confident enough in them.
But then there was physics.
The one you were supposedly studying, locked in the room with Jake. The one you learned while feeling the heat of his body against yours, his soft whispers, groans in your ear as his hands explored every centimeter of your skin.
It was undeniable that Jake's practical method worked wonders, and that was exactly why you took the lead and suggested that for that day's study session.
âYou wanna do what?â
You and Jake were sitting across each other in your room: Jake on your bed and you at your desk chair. He had just arrived for your tutoring of the day and you immediately greeted him with a suggestion that had him with the most dumbfounded, in disbelief, shocked kind of expression written all over his face.
âSuck you off while you explain the basics of that shit,â you repeated yourself casually, like it was the most natural thing in the world.
âQuantum.â Jake pointed, his eyebrows skyhigh at that point.Â
âYeah,â you nodded, smiling innocently while playing with a pen and wiggling your legs off the chair.
âYou want me to teach you the basics of quantum physics while you suck me off?â He echoed, still trying to completely comprehend your proposal.Â
âThatâs exactly what I just said.â
It was an undeniable proposal, right?
Jake blinked, his brain falling into a dangerous short-circuit. To imagine you, kneeled in front of him, his dick buried deep in your throat, free-fucking would be his wettest dream come true.
However, there was a big chance of him losing control of his sounds â and himself â the very moment your pretty lips wrapped around his dick, tongue playing with his sensitive length as your gorgeous doe eyes looked up to him.
Jake damned himself for getting hard just by the thought of it.
âAnd how does that help you⌠Practically talking?â
He was really trying to logical think and follow your thought process, shifting on his seat while his mind traveled away.
The whole fucking while studying was a thing not only because you both wanted it to happen, but mostly because Jake could partially dodge the creeping guilt, knowing his work was getting done, even if that meant him shoving his dick inside you while doing so â a win-win situation with his peculiar, yet effective technic.Â
With that particular request, he couldnât quite pinpoint where the logic leaned, triggering his mind to wonder if you were getting dangerously close to crossing the unspoken line that came with your agreement.
Jakeâs eyes tracked as you stood up and walked close to him, casually sitting on his lap, arms naturally wrapping around his shoulders.
âWellâŚâ You trailed off, fingers slowly and shamelessly drawing a soft line across his chest, feeling his breath hitching beneath your touch; your eyes dropping to a darker shade of lust, shifting the whole atmosphere. âHearing your moaning voice would⌠Yâknow, help me internalize it,â you smirked, letting each word teasingly hang in the thick air.
Jakeâs eyes narrowed with a spark of intrigue, head tilting slightly as he searched for a hint of humor or mischief in your gaze that would give away your plan. But you held his stare, unwavering, eyes burning with a confidence that left no room for doubt, no suggestion of play.
âSoâŚâ He murmured within a gulp, his Adamâs apple bobbing drawing your attention briefly. âYouâd remember the explanation⌠Because IâmâŚâ
âMoaning it.â
The wording left your lips light as a feather, yet as sultry as the taste of the finest wine â tempting, subtle, delicious. Jake leaned in, failing to ignore your bait, his jaw clenching as his grip on your waist tightened; a quiet curse escaped him, underbreath, the moment you busied your lips on his sensitive neck.Â
âFuckâŚâ
You rolled your hips just slightly, teasing a touch you wouldnât be giving to him. Not so easily.
âWhat do you say, mhm?â You kissed Jakeâs jawline, his chin, the tip of his nose and then his plush lips.Â
There was something about the way he kissed you back, deliberate and tender, as if you were everything he waited for his whole life.
After days of sharing intimacy, you began to notice that sometimes Jake kissed you like a lover that long dreamed of you â mouthful and yearning, as if he couldnât get enough of you. Like a soft breeze fanning your skin on a warm summer afternoon â comfortable enough to make you sigh, yet stirring something deep. Like the glow of the sun fading beneath the horizon at dusk â beautiful, fleeting, and full of possibilities. Like a first lover â fear of losing the sight of you and unforgettable.Â
Jake kissed you like he was slowly allowing himself to fall in love with you. And you didnât know yet, but he was.
Each attach of lips elicited new waves of euphoria through your veins as your feelings emerged without a proper warning, kicking the front door of your heart open and making a delightful mess.
You couldnât help the strong pump of your heart and the flutter on your stomach the moment Jake crossed your sight. How thrilled you got when scheduling your meets, not caring about the studying neither the fucking; eager to kiss, to hug, just to have Jake close.
In that very moment you wished, more than ever, for him to feel the same way. You could sense the desire in his every touch, in the way his body pressed flush to yours, demonstrating how much he needed you, how much he was losing himself in you, like magnets.
You could feel it in the way his hands roamed, the warmth of his touch, the intensity in his gaze. It was tangible, undeniable. Jake wanted you. But was it enough? Did Jake want more than just a moment, or was it just an ephemeral passion, burning brightly before fading into memory like ashes?
On the other hand, Jakeâs mind slipped into a haze, zoning out while drowning deeper in the warm and cozy ocean that was you.
He found himself lost in the memory of your first kiss â fueled by a mixture of fear and excitement. Not the fear of being caught, but the terror of realizing he had already fallen too intensely, his entire being consumed by the intoxicating pull of you. And he did nothing, nothing to fight back or to swim back to the top, utterly, willingly under your spell.
You had him wrapped around your fingers from the moment you first crossed paths at that party.Â
Jake had tried to keep his safe distance, as a way of respecting your brotherâs implicit boundaries and you, the little girl he grew up with. But mainly because he was completely aware that once he succumbed to the temptation of you, there would be no turning back.
When you both embarked on this brand new journey of friends with benefits, Jake knew that he could end up losing himself more than he should.
He believed you deserved to be treated like a queen â to be adored and desired as the most precious thing in the world. And he could be that person if you allowed him to.
But it was as clear as crystal water that you didnât see him in that way. Not when you withdrew from acts of intimacy, not when you pulled back as the kiss grew too passionate, too full of love, not when you showed that you werenât ready to take another step forward together.
Jake didnât mind being used for your pleasure, not at all. It was a mutually beneficial arrangement: you got your physics lessons and some good orgasms, and he got to have you for a brief moment, just long enough to satisfy the hunger he felt. Then he would return, craving more, locked in a cycle he knew all too well, hoping his excuses of giving extra hours of teaching would be enough to keep you by his side just a little bit more.
That first taste had done more than ignite a flame; it had marked him, like a brand, leaving him completely, irrevocably at your mercy. Jake was yours. You just didnât know yet.
That one kiss lingered painful longer than any other. When you finally pulled away, your breath came in short bursts and you were unsure whether it was the intensity of his touch or how quickly your heartbeats increased in such a short span of time.
Jake wore a lovestruck expression that had your body responding immediately â heat spreading through your chest, leaning forward, wanting more of whatever he had to offer.
âYou pull me like magnets, you know that?â Jake casually and suddenly dropped in, voice barely above a whisper but thick with something unfamiliar to you so far, something that got your stomach fluttering with an emotion you didnât want to name yet, scared of being real.
You swallowed down your immediate reaction, trying to regulate your breath while being torn between letting your heart follow along or keeping your feet on the ground, afraid of reading too much into that unusual moment that was just starting to unfold before you.
âThatâs not todayâs subject,â you managed to mutter back, a tinge of anguish holding onto your voice as your eyes traced Jakeâs handsome features.Â
You could lose yourself in him for hours and never grow tired. He had the most perfect face, soft puppy brown eyes filled with sincerity, prominent cheekbones that constantly shone brighter when he was smiling big, showing off his pretty dental arch with the slightest curl at the end of his plush lips. His sharp figure juxtaposed perfectly with the softness of his nature. Sweet, tender, endlessly loving.
For you, it was effortless to fall for Sim Jaeyun.
âWhen would it be, then?â
Jake had gathered all his strength and courage to throw that question at you, wavering just a little when you answered with a dumbfounded frown and a quiet âWhat?â.
âWhen the fact that you pull me like magnets, opposites but still ridiculously attracting me towards you, would be the subject?â He asked, his hands pressing harder on your hips as if he was trying to ground himself out of his nervousness, as if he was struggling to not falter.Â
You arched an eyebrow, an unconscious smile creeping on your mildly swollen lips as your breath hitched. Before you could reply with another question, Jake continued, making it difficult to keep thinking coercively, since each of his words traveled straight into your heart.
ââCuz, pretty, itâs pathetic,â he chuckled as softly as his voice came out, head leaning to the side. âWhen Iâm with you I feel like Iâm a particle in motion, constantly accelerating in pure devotion,â Jake's orbs were so, so filled with softness and fondness as he kept on saying. One of his hands cupped your cheek and he brushed your lower lip. âYou make me feel like Iâm at the center of a black hole. No matter how much I try to escape, Iâm just pulled deeper into your gravity.â
With that you giggled, head being thrown back as the flustered heat creeped on your cheeks quickly, your eyes briefly flickering away from Jakeâs loving ones for a moment before glazing into them again, this time intensely exposing your vulnerable side.
You finally lowered your guard, allowing those same feelings you had been nurturing for years to come into the light to face the beautiful, thrilling possible outcome.
âDid you just confess your feelings for me using physics metaphors, Sim Jaeyun?â You asked with a playful glint in your eyes and a teasing smile that had Jake nuzzling his flustered face on your neck, holding back his own shy smile within a bit on his lower lip.
âYes. I, indeed, did,â he muffled against your skin, making you shiver a bit.
Your heart vibrated with pure, unexpected joy. Your afternoon had a turn you werenât waiting for, but now that it did, relief flooded your senses. Jake had feelings for you too.
Another giggle escaped your lips. Never in your wildest dreams had you imagined Jake confessing his feelings to you, let alone as you sat on his lap, sharing intimacy and knowing you were the ultimate reason for his body to be so reactive. Couldnât be more perfect, everything seemed too good to be true.
With a light lean back, enough to pull Jake away from your embrace, your eyes dropped to drink in his perfectly drawn full lips. The air shifted, this time, not only with a momentary lushness or vague desire how it used to be, but carried with a ton of something close to love as well.
You rolled your hips and Jake groaned, sensitive to you already.
âSo,â you purred, your teeth sank into your bottom lip, a mischievous grin tugging the corner of your mouth as you pushed yourself forward, making Jakeâs heart flutter as his back encountered the soft mattress of your bed. âDoes my pretty physics boy want me to suck him off while he lays down orâŚ?â
Jakeâs body instantly winced with the way your eyes darkened and how velvety your voice came out of your gorgeous lips; the nickname didnât go unnoticed either, causing his dick to twitch inside his pants.
Your touch feathery, yet trailing flames through his covered chest stirred up the deepests feelings he used to hide. Jake took in your reaction as a quiet yes or maybe a subtle âme tooâ. Knowing your nature so far, you would rather give him a head, as in a taste of your affection, than admitting out loud you liked him back.
Little did he know you were on the verge of panic, fighting the urge of shying away because, although he just confessed to you, you felt pathetically nourishing feelings way more intense towards him, with your heart pounding loud and unsteady and an overwhelming ache not-so-quietly overtaking your being.
You craved to give Jake your everything, to devour every centimeter of him if that meant being close â closer than words alone could ever take you. There were no syllables together to form a proper sentence that showed a quarter of what it felt to love Jake.
âIâ I honestly donât knowâŚâ Jake murmured as soft as fluffy clouds, contrasting your demeanor at that moment, with your lips now placing slow and soft kisses all over the sensitive flesh of his neck.
You chuckled when Jake started to squirm a little, his hands nervously gripping on your ass and quiet moans escaping his lips as you took your time to enjoy his warmth with your mouth. There was something so arousing about how Jake was always reactive to your touches, either the lightest or the more intense ones, his body clearly faltering deliciously under your control. It made your panties wet quite instantly.Â
When you started to nibble that same area, you also felt Jake bucking his hips upwards, as a way to get some friction to satisfy his neglected dick. Jake was very sensitive on his neck and didnât have to admit it out loud; the fact that he was getting harder and harder underneath you was enough to show it.Â
His puppy eyes lighted up with an adorable blender of curiosity and excitement under your piercing gaze when you lifted yourself to straddle, knees on each side of his hips. The same gaze roamed his whole clothed body as if you could see through it, ravishing each small portion with adoration.
Jake had an extra cute and confused expression taking over his face when you suddenly stood up and let him go out of the warmness of your body, a playful grin dancing on your lips as you softly tapped his thigh before saying.
âGet comfy, Jakey,â there was a thick layer of desire on your voice blended with a hint of mischievousness that got Jakeâs dick throbbing while he did as you said, propping himself on his elbows to properly lay on your bed.
You positioned yourself on top of him again, smiling cheekily as you lowered your face just enough to purr against his ear, your hot breath making him wince. âCuz Iâm about to make you forget your own name.â
The way Jakeâs eyes widened after hearing your non-filtered filthy words had you giggling, his Adamâs apple attractively bobbing up and down as he swallowed, your lips attaching to it because you truly wanted to devour Jake as whole.Â
âBut Jayââ He tried to reason with you, his hands betraying his rational side as he intensified the grip on your ass once again, pulling you down so he could rut against you; his pants growing uncomfortably tighter each passing second.
âShh,â you shushed him, gently pressing a finger on his plump lips before shaking your head. âHeâs not home,â you added, planting a few kisses along his neck, jawline and lastly on his lips, propping yourself up on your arms, one on each side of Jakeâs head.
A low moan escaped Jake at the sight of your fierce, determined gaze, fearing he wouldnât be able to handle whatever you had prepared in your mind. You stared at him like a predator about to strike a prey, and damn, you looked so unbelievably sexy doing it.
âItâs just the two of us.â
Just for a few brief moments, he thought, considering adding. But you seemed more unwavering than ever to follow through with your plan, and honestly? Jake didnât care anymore.
Not when you slowly stripped him down until only his underwear remained. Not when you were kissing and licking every centimeter of his chest and abdomen, your enchanting eyes giving innocent, pure glances that contrasted sharply with your every move. Not when he could feel your hands deliberately exploring every part of his warm skin, leaving trails of burning desire that were far too overwhelming for him to remain still.
When you paused at the waistband of his underwear, all Jake could do was breathe heavily, bite his lip, and watch you expectantly, his airways feeling like closing as you finally gave him the freedom he needed.Â
âYou have such a beautiful and big cock, Jakey,â you hummed with a smirk, tongue wetting your lips as you felt your mouth watering. Jake groaned when you grabbed the base and started pumping it, painful slowly, smearing the leaking precum to lubricate. âIâd love to feel it down my throat.â
And without a warning or leaving him to properly think about your words, you gave a long, savoring lick of his veiny length just to suck at the tip, eliciting an immediate moan within a thrust forward searching for more contact.
You kept swiping your tongue across his throbbing hardened dick, always finishing with a pop on the very end, and when you felt like your spit and his arousal had coated it enough to ease your movements, you opened your mouth wide to take him whole, each centimeter causing Jakeâs body to tremble and his voice to falter in between his groans.
When you had your nose bumping his lower stomach, you stood still, feeling Jakeâs hands caressing your hair kindly. You had to use your everything to remember to breathe with your nose, especially when the view of Jakeâs head being thrown on the pillow as he, himself, struggled to regulate his own breathing was unfolding right before your eyes.Â
Jake's body at that point was flaming hot, sweat dripping onto his forehead while his free hand clutched the sheet in a way to keep him sane, though your warm cavity embracing his dick, up and down, was leaving no room to maintain the silence.Â
âFuck, babyââ His voice was hoarse, consumed by the indescribable sensation of the way you took him so pleasurably, so skillfully, so delightfully. âTâTaking me so wellâŚâ
He waved his hips just slightly with his hands still on your head, bucking against your throat and unintentionally making you gag. He didnât feel sorry at all, not when you kept on your pace, barely giving a thought about it, even stirring a muffled moan out of you.
A choked whimper escaped Jakeâs swollen lips as he felt your throat pressing against his sensitive tip again. It was bizarre how it seemed like you had been molded just for him, and only him. Jake wanted you in every possible way and was grateful because you seemed to want him just as desperately.
You increased the rhythm little by little with hollow cheeks, giving some more attention with your mouth to Jakeâs reddened tip, tongue pressing at the slit every once and a while as your hands worked on the base and his balls.Â
There was a thin string of morality that held Jake in reality, preventing him from moaning your name â though he wanted so badly to â, but he couldnât help the following whimpers and small cries that left his throat, the flutter on his stomach indicating he was getting closer.Â
You noticed it almost right away after so many moments together. Jake always started to whine in between his noises and his body would shake within each minimal stimulus, squirming like he was growing desperate. So you quickly repositioned yourself, supporting your weight with your arms on the bed and staying still, eyes blinking expectantly at Jake, waiting.
âWhy did you stopââ Jake cut himself when he propped his head up from the pillow to look at you, another half-choked groan slipping out his parted lips when he caught the view. âDonât tell me you want me toâŚâ
You nodded, still waiting. Jake chuckled, in pure disbelief and desire, because you just had held yourself with your tongue poking out of your mouth, expecting him to simply throat-fuck you.
The way you were just⌠staring, patiently idling until Jake had your hair threaded through his slender fingers to finally move was an extremely alluring, sultry sight.
âYou have no idea of how sexy you look right now,â he muttered under his breath, lowering your head while resting on his free elbow, because there was no way in hell he would lose the enticing scene you were just about to give him.Â
Jake didnât know he would be able to endure much longer of that treatment you were giving him, his body extra sensitive as he bobbed your head up and down his cock; free using your body for his own pleasure sounded a lot out of his league and he took a mental note to repay later.Â
It took just seconds in that new position for you to have Jake rolling his eyes back with his mouth falling open, a quiet moan escaping as he speeded up his hands on your head before forcing you all the way down, pressing the tip of his throbbing cock on your throat while the thick ropes of his release filed straight down your throat.
You kept steady, motioning the swallowing movement to ride Jake through his high; it felt amazing to have him shaking in between random waves underneath you, soft whines coming out of his parted lips while the grip on your hair tightened.
As soon as he loosened the said grasp, you finally removed his now a bit softened cock out of your mouth, kissing it briefly before moving up to settle yourself on Jakeâs chest.Â
âThat was insane,â he whispered in between small pants, involving you with his arms. You cared little to nothing about his sweat sticking to you, knowing you both would have to take a quick bath before Jay got home.Â
âI know,â you replied back with a grin, looking at him and kissing his lips with passion, now free from your own fearsâ restraints.Â
You used to avoid sharing too many intimate moments with Jake, the aftercare barely happening due to your constant excuses to run away, scared of falling deeper into something you couldnât really grasp at. Not until that day.Â
It felt great to experience such loving touches without having to run away â light as sweet breeze fanning your face, your heart pounded in joy inside your chest, stomach fluttering with dancing butterflies.
You suddenly giggled, parting the kiss to glance at Jake with your adorable, playful eyes. He shot you back a tender gaze, waiting for your following words.
âYou didnât teach me about quantum,â you quirked an eyebrow and Jake immediately widened his eyes in panic.
âOh, shit.â
You laughed at his dramatic reaction, at how he wanted to leave the bed to grab his clothes and try to use the last minutes of your tutoring session to teach you anything.
âCalm down, big boy,â you pulled him back. âJayâs probably not even at home yet.â
As if you had summoned him, a knock on your door got you and Jake startled.Â
âY/N?â
Both of your bodies tensed immediately. With a jolt, Jake was rushing over to get his clothes from the floor and wear them as quickly as possible while you frantically patted down your hair and smoothed the wrinkled fabric of your shirt, wiping away any hint of lingering fluids from the corner of your mouth.
âComing!â You shouted, hurrying towards the door.
You cleared your throat, giving a final, stealthy glance over your shoulder to make sure Jake was, thankfully, no longer naked. When you opened the door, you greeted Jay with an overly bright, oh-so-forced smile, praying he would buy your attempt at casualness.
âHi!âÂ
ââŚIs everything alright? I heard some noises. It sounded like someone was in painâŚâ he replied, his brows knitting in concern.
âUhâŚâ Your mouth fell open and your eyes widened comically, your brain nearly visibly overheating, struggling to process an acceptable explanation.Â
You could closely feel Jakeâs gaze burning on your back as the realization that Jay might have heard pretty much everything.
âIt was me!â Jake interjected, cutting through the awkward silence with an impressive smoothness. âI, uh, stubbed my toe on Y/Nâs bed frame when I was heading to the bathroom,â he added with a sheepish chuckle.
âOh,â Jay replied, nodding with an air of understanding that sent a wave of relief through your tense shoulders, your smile naturally coming back to your face. âThat makes sense.â
However, Jake was naive enough to notice how his best friendâs eyes dropped briefly, as if scanning you two, a faint, knowing look flashing across his face before he added with a small, friendly smile
âIâll leave you two. Donât wanna interrupt your⌠Studies.âÂ
âThanks!â You were quick to answer. Almost too quick. âWeâre almost finished!â Your voice was stained enough to raise suspicions but you opted to ignore it.
As the door clicked shut, Jake exhaled with a low mutter, his fingers scratching through his hair. âI think he knows.â
âWhat!?â You exasperated, though trying to maintain your voice low. âThereâs no way!â
Jakeâs lips curled in a fond smile as he studied your adorable disbelief expression, hands finding comfort on your waist. For someone who just had partially sucked his soul out of his body through his cock, you were acting a bit almost innocent. He couldnât resist the urge to tease you, his fingers drawing circles on your hips.
âDid you really think he bought that excuse?â he chuckled softly, eyes gleaming with amusement.
âOf course he did!â You stomped your foot, crossing your arms.
Jake's hands slid from your waist just to gently unfold your arms, guiding them to his shoulders as he pulled you closer.
âI wish you were right, pretty girl, but I donât think weâve convinced him this time,â Jake said and sighed, your cheeks warming when he used a finger to tuck a strand of your messy hair on your ear. Your pout deepened and Jake giggled. âWho the hell moans when getting hurt, sweetheart?â He murmured, his voice soft, but his lips twitched in a playful smirk.
âI mean,â you started, flustered but trying to be reasonable, âthere are probably people whoââ Jake cut you off with a quick peck on your lips, startling you into silence as your protest dissolved into a surprised smile. The sweetness of the gesture caught you off guard, and a good warmth bloomed in your chest.
Definitely you would have to get used to that.
âI donât think he bought it, pretty,â Jake eyes traced over your features, his smile lingering longer as he studied each part of it. He caressed your cheek, brushing your bottom lip before kissing you, a delicious shiver running down your spine as he did so. âBut itâs fine, yeah? Weâll figure out something.â
The woman staring back at you in the mirror was expressing everything but âIâm casually going to study.â Sure, you had chosen a chill outfit, taking advantage of the sweet autumn breeze to wear one of your cozy sweaters, but you had left your legs bare, pairing it with a short skirt that framed your thighs perfectly. Perfectly enough to drive Jake insane.
It was amusing, thrilling even to see how he now reacted so openly, nearly pathetically to your provocations. Anytime you found yourselves in a safe space â mainly your room or the living room when you were absolutely sure Jay wasnât home â Jake would unleash a stream of shameless obscenities adoring you, his hungry gaze devouring your body without a care in the world. It always earned a laugh from you before you both gave in to the heat of the moment, leading to a long, intense kiss.Â
Today, you didnât know for certain if Jay was home, and frankly you didnât want to find out either. If he was, he would probably see you and question where you were going, an endearing yet slightly overprotective habit of his. So, you walked through the house as quietly as possible, practically on tiptoes, hoping he had been held up at work or had gone out with his friends, as he usually did on Fridays.
The evening was just setting in, and Jake had mentioned earlier that Sunghoon and Heeseung were going out that night, which was the main reason you had felt comfortable enough to head over â freedom. And, admittedly, because your finals were starting next week, and you genuinely wanted to review a few things with him, even â and luckily â if that meant to have his breathy moans brushing against your ear as he fucked you dumb.
With your nervous eyes hovering the apartment in search of anything that resembled your brotherâs presence, you finally reached the door, clicking it open with a relieved sigh.
However, fate had other plans for you.
âWhere are you going?â
You startled and stopped immediately on your tracks, turning in your heels with an awkward smile to see Jay standing near the dinner room door frame with a confused expression. You had forgotten that he normally sat there while working on boring stuff on his phone sometimes, where he could definitely see you passing by.
âUm... To Jake's.â You quietly told. âYâknow, my exams start on Monday, soâŚâ
Jay arched an eyebrow, his jaw clenching ever so slightly as his eyes roamed your body, his frown deepening within each passing second. Now you damned yourself for choosing such a short skirt.
With a brief nod after his silent inspection, he muttered. âOk.â
You squinted, tilting your head, your expression shifting to something almost investigative as you struggled to read Jay's reaction â a calmness that felt almost unsettling, like the lull before the storm. You half-expected him to ask dozens of questions, and the fact he didnât got you wavering, stomach twisting in a bitter anticipation.
âOkayâŚ?â you echoed, waiting for⌠something more.
âYeah, have fun.â He replied, shrugging slightly, hands being buried deep in his front pockets. âI mean, itâs physics. You canât really have fun with that,â he teased, but at the same time, you felt weird, like there was something more to it.
âUm, right,â you nodded, forcing a tense, small smile. âDefinitely canât.â
The words lingered in the air between you two, the air dense as volcano smokes; a volcano you trusted wouldn't erupt soon. Or at least you deeply hoped for it.Â
After a quick goodbye, you headed to Jakeâs house, having to deal with your stomach aching in nervousness after your brief interaction with Jay. You truly wished for your brother to be oblivious enough not to suspect anything more than he already had, nonetheless you and Jake werenât being that cautious about your ongoing relationship.
On the other side, the said man was patiently waiting for your arrival. He had just declined Heeseung and Sunghoonâs invitation to hang out as they usually did on Fridays, trying to sound as casual as possible when explaining you would be there soon to finish your studies, since you had exams the next week.
Bullshit.Â
Jake was playing with fire. Taunting the devil. Flirting with danger. Whatever.
He had a vain certainty that Jay was suspecting your relationship with him, especially after the last encounter in your room where your brotherâs eyes shifted briefly into something close to understanding beyond what he had seen.Â
Still, Jake called you over, praying for the best outcome instead of facing whatever consequences Jay would make him go through once he finds out he has been sleeping with his little sister.
Jake wasnât an only child, however, having an older brother didnât do much to help him in portraying being in your place.
Of course he would go insane if he had a little sister and she started to screw around with a friend of his, especially if she tried to hide it. But Jake didnât plan to be the asshole type, to use your body for his own satisfaction and discard you once he got bored, never. He couldnât even create a thought about leaving you at that point. His heart beat for you, and you only.Â
You became an important part of his life throughout the past weeks, months even. Since the moment you both allowed and agreed to the friends-with-benefits arrangement and it had evolved into something much deeper. Now, Jake found himself nurturing strongest feelings for you; it wasnât only about the curves of your body, the smoothness of your skin, the longing to have you all over him, no.Â
Jake could easily say he had fallen in love with you.
It was crazy how you got him wrapped around his finger â both abstractly and practically â, as if it was such an easy task to do.Â
Life with you was way more interesting and enjoyable. Jake could spend hours fucking you, yes, definitely. But nothing compared to having your body snuggled against his, the shared warmth leaving no room for anxiety, tiredness or sorrow.
After a tough day, all Jake wanted was to be with you, cuddling while receiving your shower of kisses and hearing your giggles as you did so.
Jake fell deeply in love with every part of your personality: how determined you overall were and especially when it was about to win him over, how rational yet emotional you could be, how genuine and at the same time assertive you expressed yourself when talking about your hobbies.
Acts of service were your primary love language, and Jake loved how you put in effort to express affection in such a thoughtful way, since the shared routine made it extra hard to ease your side.Â
Taking care of his tired body after he stayed on top of you for quite a long time, giving him water and cleaning him whole. Bringing his favorite coffee whenever he stopped to pick you up from college.Â
When you both actually studied, you didnât just listen to his explanations; you appreciated the effort he put into making even the most complex topics easy to understand. But more than that, you always did your best to make him feel comfortable. Whether it was adjusting the air conditioning when you saw him shivering or sweating, or quietly flipping the pages of the textbook when you noticed he had finished reading the last paragraph, your attention to detail never went unnoticed.
On a random day, Jake reached into his back pocket and found a small note you had quietly slipped there. It was a sweet declaration, simple but meaningful, words that reflected everything you didnât always say out loud.
He knew that you worked best through actions, but the note reminded him of the affection that was always present in every little thing you did.
The sound of the doorbell ringing had Jake jumping off the couch, eager to greet you. As the door swung open, he gave you no chance to breathe, pulling you closer to lessen the longing of the warmth of your body, his lips crashing onto yours with a fervor that told you everything you needed to know for now.Â
âHiâ To youâ Too!ââ You tried to mumble against the kiss, giggling at how desperate Jake was behaving while stumbling on your legs as you entered the house, struggling to follow his messy lead.
âWant you.â He whispered as a vain explanation, guiding you both to his room without a care in the world.
With a blink of a second your half-closed eyes caught his deep frown, and your smile faltered while your body tensed straightaway. It triggered a strange feeling in your chest to perceive Jakeâs urgency. You sensed something was off, weird even; you had just left home under Jay's analytical gaze, knowing you were hiding a huge secret from him, one he could be absurdly close to discovering â or maybe he already had. Now, with Jakeâs unforeseen demeanor, if you forced yourself hard enough to connect the dots, you would say the man kissing you was holding some information back.
Or atleast holding something back.Â
âWait, waitââ You tried to break the sloppy kiss by pushing Jakeâs chest lightly, away enough to attempt to pry an explanation out of him without his mouth devouring yours. âWhat happened?â
Jakeâs eyes roamed your concerned face briefly, a flicker of hesitation flashing before he smiled tenderly. His hands on your hips pressed the area ever so mildly, as though he fought a way to anchor him, as if he suddenly started fearing to lose your touch.
You didnât buy his smile.
âCanât a man miss his woman?â
His woman.
Though the manner of addressing you had your heart swirling in a sweet, thrilling carousel and your cheeks warming up, you couldnât help the growing bittersweetness slowly and painfully swallowing your entire being.Â
âYes, you can,â you didnât hold back your half-smile before your eyes softened, nearly teetering a probing, piercing one as your hands softly caressed Jakeâs face. âBut I feel like thereâs something more.â
Jakeâs breath hitched, not due to how intense he was kissing you just seconds ago, but mostly because you were so fucking right.
Jake had a problem sleeping last night after you confirmed you would visit him the next day. Excitement? No. Fear.
Inviting you over to his place felt like a way of grounding the relationship, making it real. Alongside the once-conflicted feelings that had now settled comfortably into love, there was the weight of responsibility to bring you into his world, to make it real for everyone, make it real to his best friend. To your brother.
Jake wasnât exactly afraid of his friendship with Jay falling apart. Though hurtful, he for sure could find ways to live through it. He did worry about you. To Jay, you were family â true family, tied by blood. If things went wrong, you wouldnât have the luxury of cutting ties; you would be forced to navigate whatever fallout happened. Jake hoped fervently that it wouldnât come to that, that you wouldnât have to face a harsh reality just because you both liked â loved â each other.Â
Yet, a new sense of resolve was rising within him, making him believe that no matter the outcome, he would do whatever it took to keep you by his side. Fighting for you felt easy. Making you happy was his ultimate goal.Â
Jake would cross oceans, move heaven and earth if that meant to stay with you.
So, you were right, because he was overthinking the possibility of telling Jay about your relationship. But before, there was going to be a relationship to begin with.
âWill you be my girlfriend?âÂ
Jake caught on your body shifting and backing away a little, your breath stuttering, eyes widening, wavering before his proposal. He found himself panicking within a snap prior to your silence, cursing internally for letting his feelings take over and the question to escape his lips.
A bit longer. Just a bit longer he should have waited to understand where you stood emotionally when the subject was the two of you, because beyond considering your feelings, Jay was in the equation as well, difficulting the possibilities of the said relationship to blossom.Â
There was no coming back, though. The words flew out of his mouth, lingering in the air and weightening it as you quietly processed what you had just heard, wondering if you were tripping.Â
Jake gulped and immediately started to ramble, fumbling over his words with a voice that broke a bit once and a while as he did so, trying to cover up the angushing lack of noises between you both.
To some extent, Jake feared you would somehow hear his heart beating in panic.Â
âYou donât have to accept,â he began, his voice unsure, yet full of vulnerability. âI mean, weâre seeing each other almost everyday, and I really have feelings for you and maybe... Maybe you feel the same? For me?â He hesitated, puppy eyes wide and glistening with hope and desperation searching for any sign from you. He found nothing.
âLâLike, weâre having sex quite often and I like your company a lot,â he stammered. âIâd love to call you my girlfriend. I know thereâs Jay and heâs your brother and he may not accept it, but Iâm willing toââ
âShut up.â You cut him off sharply by pressing a finger on his mouth.
A deep frown marked your forehead as you pondered thoughtfully, your gaze focusing on some random spot down the hallway behind Jakeâs back, your mind racing.
Jake froze, eyes growing bigger at your reaction, his lips pursing together in a small, adorable pout that made your heart twist.
âOk.â
You almost felt guilty for making him go through whatever was racing in his head; hearing his voice falter made your chest ache. At the same time, you couldnât blame yourself, not when Jake had literally just asked you to be his girlfriend.
It was the question, the most important one of your life so far, the very one you had dreamed of hearing from him with his attractive Australian accent, nearly bordering a childish fantasy.Â
âPlease, just say somethingâŚâ Jake pleaded, voice cracking with anxiety. âEven if itâs a noâŚâ
His words hit you like a wave crashing onto rocks. Your head snapped towards his direction, your wide eyes shooting a skeptical, confused glance, increasing his own confusion. Jake tilted his head to the side, just like a puppy, and then the realization hit.Â
âWhat?â You exclaimed, a hint of laughter tempting to burst out. âNo! Babe, noâŚâ
There was a clear layer of desperation on your voice now, as you shook your head frantically and sweetly placed countless kisses on Jakeâs plump lips, cupping his face gently to keep him steady. He tried to ignore how his chest burned deliciously with the pet name.
âGod, no, Iâd never say no,â you muttered, his breath of relief fanning your face kindly, enough to ease your own heart. âI was just⌠Taken aback. I never expected my lifelong crush to ask me to be his girlfriend,â you giggled as you said, feeling a fluster creep up your neck towards your face.Â
Jakeâs half-open eyes enjoyed the tenderness touch you showered him with, but then he suddenly dropped to something similar to confusion again, pulling back just slightly to look you in the eyes.
âSorry, lifelong crush? Me?â His voice was a mix of disbelief and amusement.Â
You laughed again, the sound light and full of affection before you hid yourself on the crook of his perfumed neck; the scent easing your senses right away.Â
âYes, you,â you mumbled, shyly. âYouâ You have been on my mind for quite a long time, Jaeyun,â to admit it out loud had you even more embarrassed, so you choose not to pinpoint precisely when. Not for now. Gladly, he didnât push you as well. He would make the most of it later on.
âSoâŚâ He trailed off, pushing you off your hideout to offer you the most beaming expression you ever saw him having.
Jake was so, so gorgeous, with his wide, contagious smile, the soft curve at the ends framing it perfectly. Eyes sparkling with adoration, giving you the most tender and expectant look.
âYes, Jake. Iâd like to be your girlfriend.â
âMhm,â he nodded, feigning a cool, relaxed demeanor you both knew wasnât actually true, trying to hide the actual urge to jump like crazy behind a mischievous smirk. You arched an eyebrow, expectation growing slowly in your chest. âWhere should I first take you as my girlfriend now?â
You giggled, biting your bottom lip with a naughty smile as you felt your heart palpitating harder; Jake would always be your crush after all. And to know you had him as your boyfriend only increased your arousal amidst the unfolding talk.
âHow about your room, mhm?â A finger slowly traced his jawline, eyes dropping to something more intense. âBet you have a lot of physics stuff in there, am I right?âÂ
Jake laughed at your subtly mocking, yet naive words, especially because you both knew you werenât wrong at all â and where that type of conversation would lead.
âOh, you have no idea, darling,â he shot back, mirroring your tone as he pressed you back against his bedroom door, pushing it open with a deliberate motion. âGotta show you how physics explains some⌠very special positions, yeah?â
You werenât entirely sure how it happened, since things with Jake usually escalated quickly once your lips met, but now he was hovering over you, his firm body pressing you into the bed, kissing you slowly and consumingly, as his fingers roamed over every centimeter of exposed skin.
You were well aware of how tempted Jake was by your legs â one of the reasons you had chosen that particular skirt â but you were uncertain if you would ever get used to how he grasped at you, his fingers digging in as though he needed to pull you closer, as if he desperately wanted to break the laws of physics and turn you both into one single body, occupying the same space.
Each time he rocked forward, grinding himself against you in search of any fleeting relief, waves of heat and excitement coursed through your veins straight to your core.
When a soft moan escaped, the noise vanished in between the heated touch and Jake lost composure. His mouth left yours only to travel lower, finding the sensitive line of your neck, lips pressing eagerly, his tongue tracing over the spots he knew would make you shiver, followed by a soft scrape of his teeth as he teased every weak point with deliberate care.
Your nails dug into his shoulder as your head fell back onto his pillow, granting him full access, your other hand tangling in the softness of his brown locks, gently tugging as his lips moved with purpose. But Jakeâs impatience was hard to miss. He drifted down to your jawline, then lower, hands trying to slip beneath your sweater in an attempt to feel more of you.
âNo,â you tugged his head back by his hair. âNo, no, no. Listen, I get youâre excited and believe me, I am too, butââ You tried to speak between the sloppy kisses Jake continued planting along your jaw, a clear attempt to quiet you. âWe have to study.â
âPlease,â he breathed, a whine escaping him, not giving a care about how tight you gripped his strands, lowering himself, nuzzling his nose against the fabric of your sweater. âPlease, I need you. I need to feel you.â
âWe have to study.â You echoed what you just said and somehow it seemed to be rather to bring you back from the blissful lust than to take Jake away from it.
âPlease,â with a plea, Jake locked his eyes onto yours, his voice thick with desperation.
You swallowed nothing as you saw deep, raw, intense desire once you met his gaze.
Jake had his two beautiful orbs oozing with craving, with need. His jaw was clenched, his features somewhat sharper under the dim light of his room. The sight nearly made you moan aloud, perhaps longing to have Jake between your legs more than him himself.Â
The blaze in your stomach increased as he leaned down slowly, fierce eyes still glazed onto yours, little by little decreasing the distance between his face and your still covered cunt, teasing to get under your skirt.
You knew exactly what Jake wanted. He had hinted at it so many times it was almost impossible not to relent. And yet, despite the power he somehow had over your decisions in moments like these, sending you easily into a haze of desire, you were a woman of your word.
âNo,â you murmured, reluctantly pushing his head away and sitting up. âDo you remember our deal?â
Jake's gaze flickered, torn between your tempting thighs with the pretty skirt framing them perfectly and the inflexible expression on your face, the frustration evident. God, he could already picture himself getting lost in between your legs, your thighs squishing his head because he was pleasuring you so good. And preferably wearing the exact same skirt you wore.
âFine,â he huffed, rolling his eyes like a scolded child. âLetâs study so you can ace that fucking exam.â
You bit back a grin as you read Jakeâs pouty face, reaching over to grab the collar of his white shirt and pull his body onto yours one last time, starting a slow, savoring kiss. You sucked his bottom lip within a quiet smack sound as you drew back.
âSorry, canât help myself,â you muttered with a cheeky smile, eliciting a chuckle from Jake.Â
Your eyes tracked the motion of his tongue sweeping across his swollen, reddened lips, stealing any lingering remnant of your taste before standing on his foot.
âYouâre trouble,â he said while offering you a hand. âAnd I like that.â
When he headed you over his desk, you smirked, ignoring the slap he gifted your ass with before sitting.Â
âSo, sound waves, huh?â you purred, fingers tracing over the open page before looking up at him with a playful glint. âIâm curious how youâd explain it to me.â
Jake would always follow the same flow. He would start with you beside him, explaining the concepts from the book in simple terms, and you would initially go along, absorbing the material through the practical examples Jake offered so effortlessly.
But then your attention would start to drift â to the way his lips moved, the soft, deep resonance of his voice that seemed to echo through your entire body, the way his slender fingers moved as he gestured with every point he made... And soon, Jake would begin to lose his composure, deciding to take a far more hands-on approach to his âteaching.â
After a call from Jay asking what was taking so long for you to go home â an unusual demeanor that got goosebumps spreading over your skin â and a lame excuse that you were deeply focused on reviewing the materials for your exam, you ended up back on Jakeâs bed, on all fours with his hardened, throbbing dick pounding fast into you.
âThe louder you scream,â Jake thrusted deep, hitting your g-spot tirelessly, making you cry his name out just like he was saying. âThe greater the amplitude of the sound waves. It carries more eâenergy.â
âFuck, Jake,â you rolled your eyes, though no one could actually see you doing that.Â
Your hands clutched the colorful sheets underneath you as a way to keep yourself sane, to maintain your conscience stable and grounded; you doubted you wouldnât even remember your name, nonetheless. It was hard to think of anything else other than Jakeâs name being chanted by your tired throat, Jakeâs dick buried deep into you, Jakeâs hands grasping your hips to keep you still, Jakeâs desperate moans, searching for his release. Jake was everywhere.Â
âSoâ deepââ You whined, your walls clenching around his length, your dripping juices coating precisely each part of it.Â
âYeah, babe?â Jakeâs voice dropped an octave, squeezing your hips hard enough to leave marks. The fleeting thought made him groan, because it sounded like you were his propriety. âLike my cock deep into your pussy, mhm?â
âFucking hell, yes,â you faltered on your arms, dropping almost completely on the bed if wasnât for Jakeâs steady grip on your waist.Â
You could feel his dick twitching inside your cunt, the realization he was getting close sparking up in between the haze bliss you were going through, lost in pure, raw desire. Jake was fucking you so good.
âSo fucking perfect,â Jake managed to say with trembling voice and between groans before his rhythm grew frantic, uneven, irregular. âMy good girl, isnât that right?â
You agreed within a mumble, not able to form proper words, eliciting a chuckle from Jake.Â
âI want your cum,â you said muffled, somehow finding strength to force your body back and meet Jakeâs thrusts. âI want it so bad, Jakeyââ
After testing words, dirty talks, movements, even decisions when sharing those moments with Jake, you managed to select a few things you could do to drive him insane, near the edge almost instantly. So it took just a few pumps for you to be filled with Jakeâs warm liquid, his orgasm hitting strong as he threw his head back, choking in between a long, delicious moan. He held you still, his dick deep into you as his body shuddered, hips stuttering while he enjoyed his overwhelming pleasure.Â
With a hiss Jake released you from his grip, removing his length slowly, eliciting a discontent whine from you since not only you didnât cum, but also felt the immediate lack of fulfillment and the feeling of his seed dripping down your legs. His hooded eyes were blurry, but he caught a brief view of it together with your slightly bruised skin before dropping his exhausted body onto the bed. Hot.
You quietly watched as he laid near you, how his chest rose and fell heavily, the known silver necklace moving together with it; you took the opportunity to come back to yourself, regulating your own breathing and regaining control of your body â deep down you knew Jake was just getting ready to give you your own climax. However, a mischievous plan popped into your mind and you couldnât let it slide so easily, not when you finally had the chance of hearing him screaming your name without fearing your brother.Â
âLemme ride you,â you muttered suddenly and moved to position yourself on top of Jake, hands finding support on his torso, straddling with a knee on each side of his body.
âBabe, wait a bitââ He said within a frown, but not really doing anything to stop you; he just rested his palms on your waist, watching you grab his slightly softened shaft to align on his lower stomach. âDoll, pleaseââ When you wiggled your hips to fit your wet, warm folds in his cock and started to deliberately grind, he nearly screamed. âPlease, stopââ
Your eyes darted over his contorted face, not halting your movements as you did so, a soft moan leaving your mouth.
Such a lustful sight. Jake had his beautiful and swollen lips parted, silent, whispered pleas escaping it as his brows furrowed deeper; eyes closed tightly, cheeks flustered and breaths coming out ragged, mixed with airy moans that only intensified as you started to rut back and forth faster.
âPlease, babe, âm sensitiveââÂ
Jake felt his head spinning, quite literally as he squirmed and abstractly, nonsense words cutting through the thick air, because, God, it felt so strangely good to be overstimulated by you.Â
âDo you want me to really stop, Jakey?â You asked sweetly, yet a bit concerned that he was actually not enjoying it as you leaned forward to suck the skin of his sensitive neck.
He moaned. Like, really moaned and shook his head frantically.
âMhm, fuckââ You lifted your body again just in time to catch his eyes rolling and fluttering close. âDâDonât you dare to, fuck, to stopââÂ
You kept on rolling your hips with a grin dancing on your lips. Jakeâs sensitive tip touched your clit even so often, provoking your body to spasm a little. You aimed to get him hard again, so you could finally fuck yourself and achieve your orgasm, and because of the earlier interaction of your bodies you werenât that far from coming.
Jake opened his eyes lazily, taking in the view of your exposed chest that quickly was being abused by his big hands, pinching your hardened nipples and kneading the soft flesh of them. You threw your head back, mouth falling open with the feeling of Jake touching almost everywhere.
At some point, Jakeâs length was completely stiff beneath you and you took no time to position you in your pulsing hole, sinking in one go that had you and Jake throwing heads back with loud moans.Â
Your breath was irregular when you propped your hands on each side of Jakeâs face, starting to bounce in an unwavering pace that, together with the way you locked eyes with Jake, fierce and full of determination to finish, got him moaning within a smirk, proudly.
âLook at you,â Jake cooed at you, his voice hoarse, hands raising to tenderly tuck a strand of hair behind your ear to give him the full view of your pleasant contorted face.
âYes, that's it,â he encouraged, sliding his fingers down your sides, squeezing it mildly; his lips stretching into a bigger smirk when you started to whimper and clench around his length. âRide it, baby. Use me to get yourself off.â
And so you did, speeding up your rhythm as you chased desperately for your own release and consequently led Jake towards his â he was extra reactive due to the overstimulation, so at that point he was practically holding himself back not to cum again, craving to keep on feeling your tight walls squeezing his dick and eventually you creaming it.
Jake was big, hard and deliciously leaking inside you, his tip reaching your g-spot with ease and constancy, enough to make you start to scream as your moans grew louder. When his slender fingers found their place on your clit, rubbing fast circles to help you out, you couldnât help but close your eyes with your mouth agape, a blender of whimpers and whines melodically falling from your lips as your arms began to fail to hold you in that position, making you slightly falter forward.
âJâJakeâ ugh, fuck, so fucking goodââ You stammered amidst cries of pleasure, feeling the coil in your low stomach teasing a strong build up.
At the same time your thighs began to burn, frustration emerging together with your desperation to cum, your own body betraying your release as you wavered the pace. Within seconds Jake took notice of how exhausted you were starting to act, and in no world he would let his girl down, so to maintain the same posture he propped his legs up, feet planted on his bed as he whispered for you to stop for a second.
âJust⌠Trust me,â he mumbled after seeing your confused face while letting go of your sensitive bundle of nerves from his skilled fingers to grab your ass, full hands in each cheek, holding you still as he started to push himself upwards.
You rolled your eyes quite instantly, letting your body fall onto his, your face finding its place on the curve of his pretty neck, where you started to pant and messily kiss in between your heavy breaths. Jake was leading the entire moves, pushing you down and pulling him up, heavenly deep.Â
Each desperate, frantic, urgent thrust was leading you closer to your climax; you could sense it was going to be a strong one, and your whiny moans gave it away for Jake, who found himself teetering the edge as well.
âCloseâ âm closeâ So closeââ He cried, feeling his dick leaking precum already.Â
With a snap you let it go completely, your body shaking in uneven spasms as your juices fully coated Jakeâs length within a long, striking moan. His own release followed yours, since your clenching cunt and the lewd wet noises as he rode you through your high left no room for any sanity or self-control.Â
Jakeâs big hands squeezed the flesh of your ass, shoving his cum inside you and the rhythm slowly faltered, hips stuttering as the last waves of pleasure coursed through both of you.
The room suddenly shrank as you both started to deliberately drift away from the blissful raze of raw arousal, nearly gasping for air as you did so.Â
âDonât pull out,â your words sounded more slurred than you expected, but the sweet silence in the air helped Jake to understand you, still experiencing the aftershocks of his orgasm.
âHoly.âÂ
It was everything he managed to say before the quietness took over again. You felt Jake caressing your bare back, slowly and tenderly, filled with an affection you wanted to receive only from him, fluttering the butterflies in your belly.
Eventually he was stroking your hair and hugging you close, his length still inside of you, prolonging the amazing sensation of being full. And somehow, you fell in love even harder.
âSo thatâs what freedom tastes like?â You heard Jake mumbling against your ear after a while, his honeyed voice cutting through the air kindly, and a tired laugh escaped your lips.
You couldnât help the small sting in your heart as you heard the question, afterall, none of those escaping and hiding moments would be happening if he wasnât your brotherâs best friend. You wanted to be able to love Jake openly. And hoped he could love you back just as much.Â
âYeahâŚâ You whispered within a broken smile that Jake didnât catch.Â
âI may grow addicted to it.â
Jake wanted you to stay for the night, caring little to nothing about whatever could happen if Sunghoon and Heeseung found out. But you werenât worried about them that much, you could easily coax your way out of it.Â
You were frightened of your brother.Â
So after a soothing warm shower to calm your nerves and with Jake reassuring you that the excuse you had created was perfectly convincing, you headed back, praying for Jay to be sleeping already or, even better: not at home.Â
You moved as quietly as possible, trying not to make a sound while unlocking the door, like a teenager sneaking in after breaking curfew, heart racing in anticipation of being caught.
It was so weird to have that feeling, to hide things from your brother, the one you trusted blindly because he would never judge you. Still, the situation was fragile, unusual. It was a new territory where if you pushed too far, the consequences could be far worse than you were prepared to handle.
Jake somehow eased your stirring anxiety with his sweet words and calming voice when he embraced you in a last comforting hug before you left.Â
âHe would never be mad at you, darling.â
With Jakeâs voice whispering tenderly in your head like a mantra, you finally opened the front door, stepping into the darkness of your apartment.Â
A deep sigh of relief escaped as you closed the door behind you, careful not to make a sound, the faint click of the lock triggering a shiver that quickly vanished as you realized you might be alone. You could practically feel how your tensed shoulders loosed as you started to casually slip off your boots.
âSo, how was it with Jake?â
You froze in place, back turned to where the voice came from.
Jay.
The lights suddenly turned on, but you had no courage to turn and face your brother, especially after feeling the burning sensation on your back that told you he was staring unwaveringly. The question hung in the air, thick and tense, as much as your body began to feel right after. His voice wasnât accusing, but it still carried an underlying heavy weight you feared to understand completely.Â
"It was fine," you forced out, trying to keep your voice steady, but it came out thin, shaky. The lie tasted bitter on your tongue as you unfortunately became aware it wasnât enough to fool him. Not anymore. âWâWe studied sound waves and⌠Watched a documentary. About it. He ordered food too⌠It was⌠Cool.â
Your sentences were barely coercive. Unstable, insecure, because your mind was no longer working properly. Telling blatant lies was something you never imagined yourself doing to Jay, and you certainly couldnât consider yourself good at it at all.Â
Still, you pushed through, trying your hardest to sound convincing, desperately hoping to make it through the day. Your body was screaming for a proper rest, drained from the adrenaline and energy spent earlier that Jay was oblivious so far.
Maybe the next day would be easier â maybe confronting Jay wouldnât feel so impossible.
âYeah?â Jay muttered and you finally turned on your heels to look at him.
He was leaning on the wall, smiling â but not a very pleasant smile. He had his hands shoved inside his trousersâ pockets, jaw clenched, eyes fierce, cutting through you as if he read your deepest secrets. You gulped nervously, hands starting to tremble; you could feel your heart pounding in your eardrums.Â
âDid he teach you about sound waves while you screamed his fucking name?â
Your instant reaction was to almost mutter a quiet and confused âhow did you know?â, your face dropping as the panic started to crawl in your skin. You just got caught and you had nowhere to run.
âDid he tell you two were alone, Y/N?â
Your heart dropped to your stomach immediately as he questioned and started to walk. Each step Jay took towards you felt like a heavy drumbeat, as if time had slowed down painfully, weightening the atmosphere absurdly, grounding you way too much; it felt as though heavy shackles with iron balls were bound to each of your feet, holding you in a way that left you suffocated and powerless. Excruciatingly overwhelming.Â
âBecause you probably were.â He stopped in front of you, his nostrils moving within each ragged breath. You could picture the haze of pure anger his mind got lost through his fierce eyes, eyes that never left yours. âDuring the first hour.â He added between gritted teeth and you shivered, your eyes widening as you took a step back, fearing falling because as realization hit, you practically felt the ground being pulled from beneath your feet.
There was no way Jake had lied to you, right? Leading you into a trap just to ruin your relationship with your brother. Why would he do that? You couldn't believe it, because that wasnât the Jake you knew â it wasnât the Jake who had just asked you to be his girlfriend with eyes shining with passion before giving you one of the most heartfelt kisses you had ever experienced. Jake wouldnât do that.
How did your brother find out, then?
Jay shook his head slightly, his expression hardening further before a bitter, dry laugh escaping his pursed lips. He saw the look of disbelief in your eyes, the shock written all over your face and he read it precisely.
"No, Jake didnât tell me,â he explained briefly to your racing thoughts. âHe just didnât know Sunghoon would be home earlier than expected."
Jay, though clearly upset, spoke with an edge of reassurance. His voice was low, barely concealing the tension and irritation simmering beneath it, still, worried about you.
A cold wave sprang in your chest as the realization struck like a bolt of lightning, your body quivering with fear and your wide, glistening eyes teasing to collapse in tears. You felt exposed. Vulnerable. Your secret was no longer a secret, and you instantly cursed yourself for holding it secretly to begin with.
Stupid, dumb, idiot.
Jay took a deep breath and you, another step back, trying to run away from the radiating rage coming out of his frightening presence. Jay was bigger and taller than you, and right at that moment, you felt even smaller.
âDo you have any idea of what it's like to find out that my little sister is screwing around with my best friend? And worse â hiding it from me?â
Jay didnât yell, in fact his voice was dropping an octave, low as possible, and was more than enough to leave you on the verge of crying, your eyes stung, averting his angry ones. You lowered your head.
âI'm sorry, Jay, Iââ
âWasn't thinking correctly? Didn't think I'd find out? Cut off with your lame excuses, Y/N.âÂ
It was the first time Jay talked to you with such a cold tone, sharp as a knife, yet quiet. Something about the fact that he was mad, and still had a lowkey calm voice triggered the worst on you.Â
âYou lied to me, Y/N. Lied.â His voice faltered, but only for a moment. The raw emotion in his words was enough to pierce through the façade he had been trying to maintain, his eyes glimmering with tears, bringing the worst from your own feelings towards the situation.
Your breath hitched, the sting of betrayal and guilt washing over you. Unfortunately though, Jay wasnât finished.Â
âWe promised not to lie to each other, Y/N. And you broke that promise.â His eyes burned into you, like they were seeing right through the walls you had built to shield yourself, the same barriers Jay once helped you to create, to feel stronger before the ones who tried to destroy your dreams. To destroy you.
For seconds, you saw your parents on Jay. For a brief moment, you pictured your younger self being scolded for your small mistakes and decisions, never being good enough. For the slightest millisecond, you hated your brother.
âGo to your room.â
You lifted your confused eyes only to see Jay cleaning his tears with the back of his hand.Â
âAre you grounding me?â You asked quietly, but a hint of angriness stirred to snap out.Â
Jay chuckled again, humorless. âNo,â he gave you a last look with a mild head shake. âI just canât see you now,â his sincerity was like a slap on your face. And you had no doubt that receiving one would hurt way less. âAnd youâre old enough to know youâve fucked things up big time.â
Saying you cried all night would be an understatement. Having feelings for Jake now felt like a bittersweet ache, hard to swallow and to have close to you. You couldnât help but get into a spiral of darker thoughts.
Was it worth it?
part 2
#jake x reader#sim jake x reader#jake sim x reader#jake smut#jake fanfic#enhypen x reader#enhypen smut#heegyukeluv works
2K notes
¡
View notes
Text
John, heâd been waiting for this moment, been waiting for you to come through the door with tired eyes, an ache in your bones and your head pounding so much you were disappointed that your instincts had kicked in when you slipped on some ice outside and caught yourself instead of letting yourself get knocked the fuck out. So disappointed.
And after a long train ride into the beautiful countryside, a taxi ride to the rustic cabin that always looked more like a cottage to you, you werenât even bothered about special greetings anymore.
You practically collapsed on Johnâs lap, curling up there. Your sleeves pulled over your fists because you once again forgot a coat on the way out of your flat. Rubbing your tired eyes with said sleeve covered fist, you mumbled out a sleepy âhelloâ to which he chuckled pulling your hand away from your now red eye.
âHello to you too love.â You snuggled further into his neck, thankful that he had trimmed his mutton chops and beard down so they werenât massively bushy and tickling at your nose like last time. âLong day?â
âThe longest.â At this he grinned. John had been waiting for you to have a bad day at work so he could convince you to quit and live off of his money. Heâd mentioned it so many times before but unfortunately you always thought he was joking and when he had rasped it into your ear while he was buried deep inside you, you thought that he was just being his usual possessive self.
Not fucking true. Okay itâs partly true, but John was serious. He wanted to put you up in his well polished cabin. Wanted to marry you so you couldnât argue against him when he said âwhatâs mine is yoursâ. Wanted to come back from missions to find his cute little wife in his bed. He wanted to spend his free time gardening and baking with you. Going to the farmers market with you and he always wanted to try his hand at painting.
John Price wanted nothing more than to come home to you swollen with his child. Couldnât wait to take leave so he could take care of you properly. Desperately wanted nothing more than to be there when you bore his child, holding your hand and telling you âyouâre doing so well, my brave girlâ. Wanted to see the sweet little baby that you made together on your hip while you told him all about the new curtain samples you got because âthe ones in the den are ghastlyâ as you so eloquently put it.
And now this was his chance to broach the subject seriously with you. If you agreed, which was a big chance because of how dishevelled you looked and how exhausted you must have been feeling. Then that was brilliant.
If you said no? Maybe he would have to resort to the old ways. Getting you fired. Getting you evicted. Taking all the fight out of you until you truly are broken and begging him for help. Itâs not nice but itâs necessary.
âI have something I want to discuss with you sweetâart.â . . .
#squishycheekanon#captain johnathan price#john price smut#captain john price x you#john price fanfiction#john price fluff#john price x y/n#captain john price x reader#john price x oc#john price x reader#captain john price#john price#john price x reader smut#john price x you#captain price x reader smut#captain price smut#captain price x reader#captain price#captain price x female reader#captain price x y/n#captain price x you#captain john price x female reader#call of duty john price#call of duty smut#call of duty price#cod fic#cod price#cod x reader#cod fanfic#price cod
2K notes
¡
View notes
Note
gojo and vibrator overstim??? he pleasures u like crazy after u guys go to a party and he sees a lot of guys checking u out, but instead of taking it out on u he decides he just wants to worship uđđ and he makes u cum a lot of times dkslmds idk
When your girlfriend is too hot for her own good ft. satoru gojo x reader
this is the longest thing iâve ever written i absolutely loved this prompt..
contains: fem reader, established relationships, whipped!gojo, jealousy, perv!npcâs, vibrators, sooooo much dirty talk, praise, like a ridiculous amount, body worship, cockwarming, overstimulation, mating press, multiple orgasms, no condoms in sight, breeding kink if u squint, squirting for the first time, domestic af
MDNI
°ââ.ŕłŕż*:シ°ââ.ŕłŕż*:シ°ââ.ŕłŕż*:シ°ââ.ŕłŕż*:シ°ââ.ŕłŕż
After Gojo finished zipping up your dress and hooking the clips at the top to secure it for you, he slapped your ass, grabbing the fat in his palms, âGoddd, iâm so fucking lucky,â he sighed dramatically.
Sliding his large hands around to the front of your body and cradling your hips, resting his head on your shoulder while he admired your current look.
Makeup applied just right, not a glitter of highlight out of place, hair styled in a way that gave his intruding eyes free roam to admire back of your neck, dress fitted perfectly to your body, accentuating every curve and dip of your perfect stature.
Opting to wear your shorter heels because knowing satoru, you two would be at this âpartyâ for a very long time.
Everyone always wanted to talk to Satoru every time he showed himself in public. It was no suprise, considering his popularity throughout the jujutsu world from his incredible technique and strength; maybe a little from his blunt and childish personality too; and non jujutsu sourcerers weâre quick to swarm him from just his handsome looks alone.
Eyes that lit up any room, a perfectly symmetrical and slim face that looked like it had been hand chiseled from the finest stones, and his snowy white hair to top it all off. Satoru always getting asked the same question from girls and guys alike, flirtation laced in their voice when they spoke, âSo, is that your natural hair color??â
His height sure didnât help in making him any less invisible than he already wasnât.
You two didnât attend parties or anything of the sort too frequently though, usually only making an appearance at certain events when you had to.
This time it was a little different. Shoko had insisted on Gojo trying out this new club she started to frequent, rambling about how the ambience was just perfect; of course she didnât fail to mention the high quality liquor they housed in the process.
Satoru hadnât been to a club in a minute, since he started going out with you. Not seeing the need to anymore.
He only went to clubs before to let off steam after a particularly hard mission, letting some stranger dry hump him on the dance floor, or drinking some too-sweet non alcoholic drink with shoko at the bar, complaining about his day.
He never took any of the strangers home though, he just needed to get out of his head, letting the lights, shitty blaring music, and sweaty bodies overstimulate his mind for a night.
Then he found you. Perfect, sweet, little you. He found that he much rather would wrap his arms around you in the comfort of his quiet, familiar home, and lay on your breasts while you ran your fingers through his hair.
Nails raking comfortingly over his scalp as the stressors of his day melted from his brain. Why was he even stressed again?
See? This was a hundred times better than the club.
But when shoko was insistent, she was thoroughly insistent.
When you stepped through the thick doors of the establishment, guided by satoruâs comforting palm on your lower back, you couldnât help but notice this felt a lot more lax than what you were expecting.
Music not overbearing, people mingling with each other, and weirdly seeing a lot of familiar faces in the crowd.
âSatoru, where are we right now? I thought this was a club.â you asked, tilting your head up at him while he led you in the direction of the bar, to get you something to loosen you up; he knew how you got antsy at these things sometimes.
âAh, I didnât explain very well did I?â he giggled, âThisss,â gojo paused to splay his arm out in front of him, âIs where Jujutsu sourcerers come to relax!â that explains why you saw so many familiar facesâŚ
âI think thatâs why Shoko loves this place so much, people tend to stay away from her here..â pursing his lips pretending to think, âShe can be quite intimidating when you know her..â he finished, shaking his head dramatically like he was trying to forget a scary memory.
âAnyways, how are you feeling sweet thing? wanna get a drink first?â Your handsome boyfriend asked you, hand still resting against your back as he gave you a little smile.
âYeah I uh-â looking over Gojoâs shoulder before continuing, âI think that blonde guy is trying to get your attention.â pausing your response to your boyfriend as you tipped your head forward, signaling behind gojo.
He turned his neck, shoulders perking up when his eyes focused on the man, âYooo! Howâs it goin!â Gojo waved his free hand at the man as he chirped cheerfully at him. âWas sent on a mission with him once when i was a third year, some ârival school bondingâ activity.â he explained.
âLooks like it worked,â you laughed, bringing your hand down to pat him on his firm behind, âYou should go talk to him, it sounds like you havenât seen him in a while.â Encouraging him, starting to slip out from his hold.
âYou sure baby?â he asked, slightly pouting, not wanting you to feel awkward or neglected by yourself. God satoru was so sweet. You laughed at his antics before smiling fondly, reassuring him, âIâll be okay toru, jusâ gonna go make myself at home on a bar stool.â
Gojo gripped your waist, pressing a kiss to your cheek as he started off for his old acquaintance. Your heels clicked on the ground as you made your way over to the bar in the other direction satoru had gone off in.
You ordered yourself a drink, something sweet, and not too strong, just something to relax your nerves as you were now by yourself in a space youâve never been before.
Just when you started thinking you should go make small talk with someone there, a tall man walked up to you, noticing the few buttons on his shirt undone. For some reason this made him look less intimidating; you were already walking around like there was a stick up your ass, so seeing someone look a little more laid back eased your nerves a bit.
He introduced himself, giving your figure a quick one over that you missed as you stuck your hand out for the man to shake, introducing yourself politely back.
The two of you got lost in conversation, talking about how harboring your jobs were, the only common subject you thought of to talk about with the stranger.
Gojo had made himself comfortable on the halfmoon sofa adjacent to the bar, conversing with a small crowd now, all catching up and laughing with each other.
After maybe half an hour or so, when the conversation was diverged away from him, he averted his gaze to you, watching you giggle at something the dark haired man said.
He didnât recognize him, but he did recognize the hungry look he had on his face. The same one gojo had whenever he looked at you.
You looked completely oblivious to the manâs gaze as you continued ranting, the alcohol obviously having some affect on you, looking so relaxed while you talked to him.
Gojo couldnt take his eyes off of the scene in front of him for the life of him. People around gojoâs voices starting to become distorted at he channeled 110% of his focus onto you.
Giving a quick glance around the room and catching two guys staring at your ass. The way you were perched on the stool, body leaned into the counter a bit, making your back arch, poking your backside out in association, made you look incredibly seductive.
One of the men elbowed the other in the ribs, making him look at the sight he was witnessing; that of which being your body.
Gojo stared at them like if he tried hard enough, he could make them go blind with his mind.
Satoru would never in a million years stop you from wearing something you wanted out of the house; scandalous or not.
He loved seeing you feel good in your body, so if that meant wearing nipple pastyâs and a fishnet bodysuit out of the house? so be it, he would be in his rightful place on your hip the whole time.
But right now, he really wished everyone would stop looking at what was his.
He knew you looked good, you always did, but that didnât give these sleazeballâs the right to oggle you like a piece of meat.
Bringing his attention back to you and the man you were conversing with, he noticed his hand had placed itself on the side of your stool, dangerously close to your thigh.
His lip twitched at the thought of his filthy hands touching your sacred body.
Giving a one over to the people around him once more and realizing that a lot more than just the man you were talking to and the 2 sluts objectifying you in the corner were passing glances at you.
âGojo? you good?â His old acquaintance asked skeptically when he realized the veins looked like they were threatening to burst in gojos hands as he squeezed at the arm of the sofa.
Satoru stood up without saying so much as a goodbye to the people he was with, not caring about how rude or disrespectful he came off, as he quickly made his way over to your side of the room.
âHaha, I agree,â the man laughed a little to hard at something you said that truthfully wasnât all that funny, âMind if I get you another drink cute thing? Looks like you finished that one.â he flirted.
Finally picking up at his flirtations you started to reply, âOh! uh.â uncomfortably shifting in your seat at the pet name, suddenly way to aware of his hand on your stool next to your leg. When did it even get there?
Looking over to where Satoru was supposed to be, eyes widening slightly, when the familiar face was nowhere to be found.
âSorry cute thing, did i scare ya?â gojo mimicked the man across from you, staring daggers into his eyes with his intimidating orbs as he wrapped his arms around your body, large frame towering behind you.
âSatoru! jusâ figured you went to the bathroom or somethinââ you said, rubbing his hand that was placed on your torso with your thumb affectionately.
âUh we were having a conversation.â the man interrupted your affections to one another, not listening to Satoruâs very obvious hints that you were not on the market. He figured he would make it a little more obvious for the strangers dense little head.
âSorry buddy, iâm not feeling too well right now, so I need my cute little girlfriend to take me home.â emphasizing the nature of your relationship as he pouted his lip fakely at him.
âNot feelin good toru?â you asked, turning your neck around to look at him, face full of concern.
He felt his heart skip a beat at your worried tone. âYeah âm sorry baby, you looked like you were havin a good time, but I really wanna get outta here.â overwhelming eyes glancing over the room, scaring off each and every last personâs ravenous stares on your body.
You stood up, smoothing out your dress as gojo fell into position like always, hand on the slope of your back as he crouched down to lay his head on your shoulder dramatically, trying to get you to baby him.
It worked, your hand coming up to ruffle his hair, âItâs alright toru, my conversation here was just wrapping up.â you referred to the man who unbeknownst to you was trying to come onto you throughout this whole interaction.
Sticking his tongue out childishly at the man when you werenât looking, the two of you started for the door.
Gojo never got self conscious about himself, but you were different. He didnât realize how much he really hated people looking at you like you were nothing but a body until you were in situations like these.
He wasnât scared you would leave him for someone else butâŚok maybe he was slightly scared you would leave him for someone else.
Heâs the great Gojo Satoru!! The strongest sorcerer of the modern age!! People think he wasnât aware of how obnoxious his personality got sometimes, but he was. He was aware of it being a turn off for many people.
He never thought that you would feel like that about him though, but seeing all of these admittedly attractive people who possibly had less annoying tendencies than him made him hold your body against him tighter.
âAre you feeling alright satoru? you never wanna leave these things early.â you asked, coming to stand in front of him when you finally exited the building. Standing on your tippy toes to reach his forehead, placing the back of your hand against it to feel if he was coming down with something.
Gojo relished in your warm hand against his soft skin, closing his eyes at the contact and groaning when you pulled away. âM fine, people just have fucking staring problems.â he mumbled under his breath.
âHuh?â you asked confused when he didnât elaborate. Gojo grabbed your hand, dragging you in the direction of the car.
The walk was a short one. When you finally arrived, he opened got door for you, helping you into the car as he shut it behind you, walking around to his respective side of the car and sliding in before turning on the ignition, pulling out onto the dark street.
You rubbed your hand on his thigh comfortingly when he stayed silent.
âYou love me right?â He spoke up, uncharacteristically insecure.
âYou big dope, did you get jealous watchin me talk to someone else all night? You left me first remember?â hand coming up briefly to pinch his cheek, making him groan, before dropping back down to his thigh.
âCourse I love you.â you admitted truthfully. ďżź
âUgghhhhhâ gojo groaned loudly, slightly tipping his head back, being sure to keep his eyes on the road when he did so, âbut he was practically fucking you with his eyesss.â drawling our his words childishly, pouting over at you.
âHe what?â you asked in bewilderment.
âSo oblivious baby, you need to be more careful, someone besides your big strong boyfriend might try to eat you up one dayâ grimacing slightly as he shook his head at your lack of picking-up-when-people-wanna-fuck-you radar.
âWhat kinda of weird things are you imagining in that head of yours, huh?â letting out a short laugh at his ridiculousness, retracting your hand back into your own lap.
âIâm seriousss,â he whined, glancing over at you, âHe was lookin at you like he could fuck you better than I do.â
You almost choked on your spit at his words, âSatoru gojo!â you chastised at his bluntness.
Now it was his turn to drop his hand onto your thigh, squeezing the fat there when he spoke, âIâll prove him wrong when we get home, gonna show him how much better I can make you feel.â He said, determination, laced in his voice.
âSatoru I donât even remember his name.â You replied honestly, not denying that his promise sounded very intriguing though, still internally scoffing at his childishness in the current situation.
âBet he remembers yours.â Making a point to slide his big hand higher up your thigh.
âBet he memorized every inch of your body too, fucking undressing whatâs mine with his eyes, who does he think he is.â gripping your thigh tightly as he got angry at his own words.
You gasped quietly, thighs squeezing together almost unnoticeably at gojos rough treatment of your leg.
"T-toru you're making stuff up again. You stuttered out, watching his jaw clench under the pressure of his teeth pressing tightly together inside his closed mouth.
Satoru ignored your words completely as he kept voicing his thoughts, "He wouldn't have any idea how to touch you like I do."
"Satoru, please." You begged, starting to feel yourself grow wet at his dirty words.
"What is it princess? The thought of me touchin' you getting you all excited?" Finally stopping his chatter about the unwanted man.
"Yes, please for the love of god stop talking." you gripped his wrist connected to his hand that was still tightly on your thigh.
"But I love making you feel good baby, wanna make you feel good all the time." He wines. You drop your gaze down to his lap and notice the massive tent in his pants, twitching every so often.
He really wasn't lying when he said he loves making you feel good. Figuring that part of the culprit for his huge boner was gojo's own words, working himself up for no reason. Not like you were complaining, as it was sounding like you were about get the best dick of your life soon.
Satoru had nothing to prove to anyone in your eyes, but in his, he had multiple faces burning into his retinas of people from the club that he wanted to line up in front of his king bed, and make them watch while he showed them how to properly treat someone like you.
"You make me feel so good satoru, dont think anyone's denying that, but ur makin' me feel all needy, please shut ur mouth till we get home. Don't know if I can take it." You whine, rubbing your thumb on the back of his hand.
He giggled, retracting his hand from your thigh, opting to place his elbow agasint the center console, grinning as he shut himself up, cock still throbbing for attention against his zipper.
The rest of the car ride was silent, air palpable, and thick with the need you both had for each other. When the car came to a park in his garage, he calmly slid out of the car, shutting the door behind him. Walking at a steady pace over to your side of the car while you waited patiently, hands crossed in your lap as you swallowed harshly.
When he slung your door open his hand came into your view, placing your palm in his larger one, he assisted you out of the car, shutting the door behind you. He let you walk in front of him, trailing closely behind you.
Getting your keys out of your purse, you flipped through them, trying to find the one that led to satoru's garage door, shaky hands trying to steady themselves when you felt Gojo press himself against your back.
You felt his clothed boner press against your ass first, followed by his hands sliding over your lower stomach, eyes rolling back at the feeling. Then you felt his plush lips against your neck, leaving soft kisses down the sensitive skin as you fought your brain to work properly so you could insert the key into the door and get on with him.
He whimpered your name into your neck, followed by a "hurry" right when you successfully cracked the door open.
Gojo swiftly spun your body around, pinning you against the door and shutting it in the process, pressing his chest to yours as he assulted your lips with kisses, moaning against you.
He slotted his thick thigh between yours, forcing a whimper out of your mouth as he undid the hooks to your dress on the nape of your neck.
"Bedroom" you managed to get out in between kisses. He started removing his tie, quickly undoing the top 2 of his dress shirt buttons, and pulling you backwards with him when he started for the bedroom.
The light of the night seeping in from his floor to ceiling window wall being the only light the two of you had to be able to navigate through his large house.
You whimpered his name into his mouth, cursing when he slid your zipper down your back while you made your way to the bedroom. You kicked the fabric off your body and he leaned down to scoop you up in his arms, now having unobstructed access to your body.
Wrapping your legs around his hips, panty-clad cunt grinding into the rough material of his pants when you bounced along his body as he walked. "Need you," he muttered against your lips between kisses. while he reached a heavy hand around your back and expertly snapped off your bra.
Bumping you both into the wall quite a few times, easing the tension a bit and making you both giggle into the kiss, before he finally made it to the destination of his bedroom.
Plopping your back down on the bed, legs still tightly wrapped around his hips. Gojo started needily humping against your heat, hand coming down to undo his belt quickly.
"Fuck me satoru." you moaned into his mouth. Gojo had to slap himself mentally at that, gaining a sliver of his rational brain back. He had something he wanted to do before he fucked you good.
"I will baby, I will. don't worry" gojo left his promise all over your lips.
Finding his zipper with ease he slid the metal down, leaning back from your frame to try and slide his pants off, proving to be a challenge when your legs stayed wrapped tightly on his hips.
"Gotta let me go so I can get ready for you princess." He smirked. Your eyes were lidded, face flushed, and lips swollen from his lips assault. Breathing heavily you whispered out an "ok" before dropping your legs against the mattress.
"Such a good girl." Gojo praised, sliding his pants and boxers off in one swift motion, long curved cock flopping up against his abdomen with a wet "plp" sound from he dripping tip. His cock looked so angry, the tip a darker shade of pink than it usually was from how aroused he was right now. Nothing but the thought of pleasing you on his brain.
You pressed your knees together in front of him, trying to relive some of the neediness you were feeling between your thighs at the sight of his thick cock. Your eyes flitted between his deliciously curved member, and his beautiful eyes when he leaned over you again, sliding his fingers underneath the fabric of the panties resting on your hip, and sliding them off of you.
Satoru groaned out loud when the cloth peeled away from your cunt. The part that cupped your mound sticking to your skin from how your wetness had seeped through in anticipation.
"Haven't even done anything yet and you're so fucking wet." he moaned, balling up the panties in his hand and throwing them in the pile he was creating, currently made up of just his pants and boxers, making a mental note to keep that specific pair to himself after this.
Undoing the last couple of his dress shirt buttons he let it drape off his large frame sensually, joining the mess on the floor, leaving him completely nude. You yourself were not fairing any better, having been stripped naked in the hall, expensive dress forgotten somewhere in the living room.
Placing his hands on your kneecaps, he spread you open for him, staring hungrily down at your cunt, shaking his head at his disbelief when he saw the slick practically gushing out of your little hole, clenching around nothing.
"Please do something." You begged. Gojo didn't waste any more time, he wrapped his hands around your hips, and placed his back against the headboard in a sitting position, plopping you down on top of him, smaller hands pressing themselves against his pecs.
His cock throbbed, hovering right under your pussy. If he just thrust his hips up slightly, it might accidentally slip in.
"Want you to face away from me, and sit yourself on my dick." He requested, "Dont worry about movin' jus want you to take it all in yourself." He comforted.
Gojo never got tired of watching you struggle to take in his ridiculous size, little moans and cries slipping out between your lips as your face scrunched in pleasure, tears forcing their way down your cheeks. The latter reaction he unfortunately wouldn't be able to witness this time, as you started into action.
Turning your naked chest away from him; much to his dismay; bracing your feet on the bed, one hand coming back to stabilize yourself against his hard abs while you used the other to align his impossibly hard cock with your tiny hole.
Rubbing the tip and his precum alike against your enterance, before your other hand came down to hold your weight against his abs, cock sliding into you with litte resistance thanks to how wet you both were.
"F-fuuuuck 's so big," You whined, tipping your head back and squeezing your eyes shut at the stretch. Gojo bit his lip, hand gripping bruisingly into your hip, relishing in your warm walls constricting around his cock.
"I knoww, takin it so good though princess, just like you always do," He praised, rubbing his fingertips against your skin as he kept talking you through it. Both of you letting out a groan together when you finally bottomed out on his cock.
You let your weight off of your feet and hands when Satoru placed his own on the bed, slinging your legs over his thighs, and making you hold your legs open for him as he placed kisses to the back of your head, "Did so good baby, took the whole thing so fucking good." His words made you clench around him, a feeling he didn't miss, as he smiled against your scalp.
"Satoru...move," you pleaded, noticing how he was staying still. He told you not to move, so you didn't, but you didn't know if you could take it if he only wanted to cockwarm you right now.
"Patience baby," Your body moved with his slightly when he leaned his body sideways, cracking open the bedside drawer and pulling out a baby blue bullet vibrator, clicking the toy on to make sure it was charged, before clicking it beck off when it successfully vibrated strongly between his fingers.
"Gonna make you feel so good princess," Confused at the brief buzzing sound you heard, about to voice your question when you felt the buzzing this time.
Gojo had pressed the vibrator against the inside of your thigh, slowly dragging it up and down your skin teasingly.
âT-toru- what are u doin?â you asked in a small voice, legs twitching, threatening to close in on themselves if it wasnât for your hands keeping them open.
âGonna worship you baby, just lay there n keep those legs spread for me ok?â His tall stature meant that even sitting, he still towered over you. This gave him a great view of everything.
Staring down at you he could see the side of your face; and the blush that covered it; the way your body folded, your wetness sticking against your inner thighs. Gojo was in heaven.
Using his free hand, he splayed his massive palm out right under your breast, keeping you pressed against his body.
He felt your pussy twitch around his cock steadily, feeling the heartbeat in your walls as you continued rubbing the soft silicone that coated the vibrator, over your skin.
The continuous pulsing around his shaft was making him dizzy, eyelids drooping heavily on his face, body buzzing with warmth and arousal at the situation.
His teasing finally ceased when he heard you whimper out his name sweetly, begging for the last time without words that you needed him to do something.
Placing the vibrator on its lowest setting against the hood of your clit softly, rubbing it in small circles over the nub. Gojo alternated between the latter motion and pressing it directly against your clit, pushing the hood of your clit out of the way, being forced to make room for the toy.
Your stomach clenched, body jerking in on itself when the toy touched a particular part of your pussy, and the stimulation became a little too much.
âo-oh my go-d toruuu,â you whined. Gojoâs watchful eyes never left his ministrations on your clit, absolutely enthralled with the scene in front of him. âlooks like that feels so fucking good,â he moaned into the shell of your ear, wincing when your walls squeezed around his cock like you were trying to milk him for all he was worth.
âs-oo good f-fuck.â your breathily moans filled the air as you tipped your head back on his shoulder. He quickly started pressing little kisses all over your cheeks as you shut your eyes, letting him take care of you.
âThatâs right, let go for me baby, I got you.â he softly whispered against your cheek, diverting his eyes back on your pussy. If he looked close enough he could see the way your opening squeezed around him, the sight being almost too erotic to handle.
âKeep your body against me baby,â he said before he left his hold on your torso and joined it down between your thighs with his other hand.
Using a couple thick fingers, he traced around the opening of your cunt, feeling how the soft flesh was pulled taught to make room for his girth.
âThat t-ickles,â you wined, feeling him make a V shape with his index and middle fingers, rubbing them around where the base of his cock and your pussy met.
âDoes it only tickle?â he asked, proving your words wrong when he pressed the vibrator harder against you, the buzzing sensation making your toes curl.
âSo erotic..â he let out a little giggle, âWish you could see this right now.â he continued, drawing little shapes on your clit and rubbing around the rim of your cunt, âPussy is stretched to the limits while sheâs huggin my cock.â he spoke, amazed.
You whined at his dirty words, silently wishing he would shut his big mouth, but not daring to say it out loud. His words not-so-secretly making you even wetter.
His cock had been leaking steadily into you throughout this entire interaction. Balls tightening with the need to release his seed inside you, to really fill you up and mark you internally as his.
Gojo closed his eyes, relishing in the intamacy, pressing his plush lips to your neck and sucking, leaving little bruises all over the expanse of your neck that he could reach.
After a while, he noticed your breath had started to pick up, cunt squeezing him continuously now instead of pulsing, âT-toru, think i-iâm gonna cum.â you whined softly, tilting your head towards him, making his raise his from his place against your neck, and stare into your eyes.
He smiled, already knowing from what your body was telling him before you spoke. âGo ahead baby, want feel you cum around my dick, you deserve it.â he spoke sweetly.
As much as he wanted to watch your pussy when it gushed out around him, right now he was so enthralled with your face. The both of you staring at each other, breathing heavily, your expression was pulled in an aroused pout, while his lips were formed in a smile.
You knew this orgasm was going to be a big one, stomach tingling with a stronger sensation than normal. Internally panicking slightly before you spoke, âf-feels d-ifferent toru.â you warned.
âFeel kinda like ur gunna pee?â he knowingly questioned. It took every molecule in his body to not cum when you nodded your head twords him, âAww âs ok princess, just let it out okay? promise itâs gonna feel so fucking good.â he encouraged.
You were about to squirt. This was something he thought about in the back of his mind every time he fucked you. Always wishing that when you came, something else would come out too.
You were squirming around in his hold at the unfamiliar feeling coiling itself in your tummy. The steady buzzing and delicious circles he was keeping up on your clit only increasing the intensity of it.
Feeling yourself begin to tip over the edge, you hurried out your words, âT-toru, kiss meee, p-please,â needing him to help you through the sensation that was about to come.
âI got you, I got you.â he giggled, pressing his lips to yours, messily tonguing the inside of your mouth while your moans raised it pitch, whimpering into his cavern.
âmhm, mhmmm,â he encouraged, as he started thrusting his hips up, fucking his dick in and out of you, helping you feel even better as his tip beat repeatedly against your gspot.
Your mouth stopped cooperating, jaw going slack as you felt your orgasm start to wreck you. Eyes rolling back in your head as the waves of your high washed over you, âyesyesyes,â gojo groaned out laughing, feeling the first trickles of your squirt spray out around him.
You were moaning so loud, broke cries of his barely coherent name leaving your mouth as he quickly rubbed the vibrator back and forth across your clit.
Balls finally releasing his seed into you at the feeling and visual of your squirt absolutely drenching the sheets underneath the two of you.
He groaned into the air, breathy laughs mixing in with them while he humped each and every last rope of his cum into your womb, pressing his balls hard against your ass when he thrusted inside.
âHoly shittt,â he dragged out when he started to come down from arguably one of the best orgasms heâs ever had in his life.
âThat was so fucking hot, good job baby,â bringing his attention back your face, leaving sloppy wet kisses all over your cheeks, licking up the tears that had fallen.
You looked so fucked out, chest heaving, and cunt twitching around him in the aftershocks, eyes fluttering at the intensity in which you just came.
âYou did so fucking well, how did that feel?â he asked? Giving yourself a second to catch your breath before you spoke, you mumbled out, âintense.â
âAwww I bet, looked like it felt so good to let it out though, pussy almost snapped my dick off with that one.â he giggled into your cheek.
âThank you toru, needed that.â you spoke breathlessly.
âDonât thank me just yet sweet thingâ he said. You cracked your eyes open when you felt him slide out from underneath you, situating you in the missionary position.
Gojo placed the breifly forgot about vibrator back on your oversensitive clit, making your legs squeeze around his hips as he used the tips of his fingers to guide his still hard cock back into your warmth.
âFuck! S-satoru what are you doing?â you panicked as painful pleasure started wracking your body, trying to jerk and jolt away from the stimulation.
âJ-jus came âm s-sensitiveee.â you whined, fat tears rolling down your face as he started a rough pace, fucking his cock into your gspot, making your words break up when you spoke.
âCuming just once isnât enough for my pretty babyyy, you deserve more than that,â abandoning the vibrator for a second to push your thighs against your head, and placing your ankles over his shoulders as he put you in a mean mating press.
âC-cant t-take it.â you voiced in between thrusts, pussy spasming ďżźuncontrollably around his fat cock. Once gojo had manhandled you where he wanted you, he placed the bullet back on your puffy clit, making you scream out.
You were feeling so overwhelmed, thighs burning from being pushed to the limits in flexibility, feeling his weight crush you while he bullied his cock into your drenched walls, and the toy? You swore this would be the night gojo killed you during sex.
âJust let yourself feel it baby, relax your body for me let me do allll the work.â he spoke, trying to reassure you as he dropped his gaze to where the two of you were connected, loud squelches emitting from him fucking into you at how wet you were, gojo feeling lightheaded seeing the thick ring of cum at the base of his dick.
Without warning he felt you squeeze around his length impossibly tight, feeling something spray against his abdomen, realizing you were squirting again.
âYeaahhhh fuck, thatâs what I wanted to see.â He brought back his hips before slamming them into you harder, feeling impossibly aroused seeing this new orgasm crash over you a second time.
Your moans and protests were incoherent at this point, tears and drool covering your face as he fucked you through another intense high.
Satoru started to feel himself reach his peak again but he needed to see that one more time before he allowed himself release.
âGood girl, gooooood fucking girl.â he praised at your lack of resistance when your body went lax against him.
You gave up on fighting the pleasure, really letting your brain go numb at the feeling of, well, everything. There was so much going on, his lips would be on your neck one second, tongue in your mouth the next, babbling some dirty talk you were too fucked out to comprehend.
The vibrator was being slid all over your folds with no rhythm, but it felt so fucking good.
âCmon you can do it, one more time baby just one more time, need to feel you squirt around me, please.â he begged.
Gojo was fucking you both stupid at this point, he was drooling, feeling so fucking pussydrunk as he mindlessly thrusted his cock in and out of your wetness.
Quickly and sloppily sliding the bullet over your clit one last time before he heard you whimper out a warning of your orgasm, impressed you were still able to form words at this point.
His jaw dropped as he came with you, electricity zapping down his spine feeling you gush around him while he stuffed you full, his moans were so needy and high pitched, overstimulating himself by rolling his hips into yours, making sure your cunt swallowed every drop of his cum.
âF-fuck, loveyousomuch.â he slurred, dropping his entire weight against your folded body, making your tendons scream at the stretch.
âS-satoru..hurts.â you voiced, successfully getting him to lean back, letting your legs drop onto the sheets, thighs and toes tingling when the blood started to circulate through them again.
âGod youâre fucking amazing, hope u felt as good as I did.â He murmured into your chest.
âare u kidding? almost died.â you whispered, brain still tingling while you gained your braincells back slowly.
He wrapped his strong arms around your body, keeping his softening cock snug inside you, his chest pressed against your was firmly.
You both relished in the feeling for awhile, intertwining your legs and feet together against the bed, wanting to feel this intamacy for a little longer before you ultimately had to clean up.
âSoâŚthink club guy could make you cum harder than that?â he spoke into your breasts.
Using your arms to gather all of the strength you had left, placing your sweaty hands on his cheeks, making him raise his head to look up at you, âSatoru,â you chastised, âdonât ruin this.â falling into a fit of giggles when he groaned in defeat, sending vibrations through your lungs.
#greenest flag gojo#this took like 6 hours lol#jujutsu kaisen smut#jjk x reader#jjk x y/n#jujutsu kaisen x reader#gojo x reader#jjk smut#gojo smut#gojo satoru#gojo satoru smut#gojo satoru x reader#gojo x geto#gojou x reader#jjk gojo#gojou satoru x reader#gojo saturo#jujutsu gojo#gojo x you#gojo fluff#gojo x y/n#gojo satoru fic#jjk satoru#jujutsu kaisen satoru#satoru smut#satosugu#gojou satoru smut#satoru x suguru#jujutsu satoru#gojou satoru x you
9K notes
¡
View notes
Note
((from @booksofthelibrary ))
The young girl runs up behind the boy and sprays him playfully with a little bit of water. A harmless prank as she giggles before handing him a brand new net that she made for him. A 'R' carved into its handle.
"happy birthday!"
::RIVERSAL
"Waaah...!!" A sharp squeal erupted from the boy at the feeling of cold water on his back, the momentarily cry of shock quickly turning to a string of bright giggles as he flicked back a few drips from his hair towards Daffy. "Oi, you!! I'll get you for that, you know! You better watch your back, miss..."
He could hardly say he was displeased at her betrayal so much as pleased he had someone to play with! His brothers tried, but could never fully get in on his games, whether it be through confusion or other business they had to attend to.
Admittedly, though he would never say it out loud, he secretly felt rather jealous, perhaps even upset at the news of her getting together with Lukhege when he had initially found out. It was frustrating, in a way - he had finally found himself a friend to play with, and for what? ...Yet, even despite those initial worries, he was glad to be further comforted in the thought that he hadn't been forgotten by her presence with him that day.
The once beaming smile faded with the momentary rush of excitement and into curiosity as he was offered the finely crafted net. "Oh...This is..." A soft red creeped up to his cheeks with a sheepish, somewhat awkward look to his smile as he idly turned it over in his hands. It would have seemed forced in a way that he was trying to smile if not for the faint twinging at the corners of his lips threatening to break out into a wide grin. For someone who was usually so excitable, it seemed Riversal in particular had the most trouble accepting gifts - even compared to his younger brother Laum, who, while sheepish, was always capable of clearly showing his gratitude. Riversal, however...
The boy's long coat swayed as he rocked back and forth once on his heels, unable to fully look the other in the eyes as he spoke in a quiet, awkward little peep. "Thank you, Daffy... This is... Nice. Um...! Thank you. Well..."
Promptly, he spun on his heel, took a few awkwardly shuffled steps, and sat with his back turned and his feet spread to either side of the net he held between his legs. Though she couldn't see it, it wasn't hard to guess how red his face must have been as part of the kind gesture.
"...Come back later," He said suddenly, a flatly dismissive, determined tone to his voice, "I have something to think about." One of his tricks, now involving his new present, most like. "Thanks... Again."
His next words, though meant to be spoken in a tease, came off as nothing but a half-hearted suggestion in all his distraction. They were nothing more than a mouthed, near-inaudible whisper as he stared and plucked idly at the strings of the net with his fingers, too deep in thought to even notice the water dripping from his hair, much less to speak. "...Go chat with your boyfriend..."
Whatever could he be plotting? Whoever could he be plotting against? Riversal didn't speak, and sat there deep, deep in thought for a very long time.
"Hah! Got you!!"
...Ah, poor Leonard. It seemed that he had been chosen the unfortunate victim of his prank that evening. From a distance, the small Riversal could be seen standing triumphantly atop his older brother's back like a proud hunter with his prey. Leonard, conversely, would have been near invisible if not for his large form and the striking beige of his coat against the greenery of the forest. The poor hermit laid cruelly fettered on the ground, all that was visible being the blond of the head that laid face-down and the shoulders of both arms spread on either side. The net that had toppled him should have been relatively easy to remove from the foot tangled within it - his brother that stood on his back, however, was not.
"Please, release me at once!" The muffled plea sounded from the ground. With a dramatically boisterous laugh, Riversal's hands found themselves resting smugly atop his hips.
"No! I've got you, now, brother~!"
"Riversal! Please!!" A bit more insistence in his tone, and enough in a voice as deep as his to make the now 11-year-old almost immediately jump out of his skin and straight to the side of his ailing brother.
"Sorry, sorry! I'm sorry!!" Riversal was the one pleading now, his tone as frantic and shaky as his hands as he removed the trap net from Leonard's back. The eldest looked pale as he sat up on his knees, deathly silent in the face of his younger brother's apologies and concerns as to his wellbeing - his eyes were screwed tightly shut. He seemed shaken, with his shortness of breath, Laum noticed with a tiny frown.
...Maybe he was claustrophobic? Poor brother.
#||Reply||:Daffy#{/SO MANY THINGS TO SAY ABOUT THIS...}#{/First and foremost: an apology. that day i told you i had it done and would send it out that night only to not do that?}#{/i wasnt lying i SWEAR; i just had it done but... i didnt look at my computer battery when i closed it for dinner and came back to it GONE#{/i was so pissed off i couldn't even think about it or any of my asks for the longest time until recently}#{/AND SOMETHING HAPPENED TO CAUSE THAT WHICH I'LL HAVE TO POST ABOUT SOON!!! gushy feels lmao}#{/I definitely won't say im grateful for LOSING the thing i spent so much time on but in the same breath}#{/this is honestly a lot better tbh}#{/I actually knew what I was doing with riv's character which is my next point!!}#{/the autism}#{/that is all}#{/finally; i wrote most of this last night when i was thinking about how magnitude negative}#{/*SMALL SMALL SPOILERS IN THE TERMS OF POTENTIAL CHARACTER DIVERGENCIES AHEAD*}#{/made leonard a masochist (like... a literal; full-on masochist im not even kidding) and}#{/daffy if he excuses himself please don't check up on him to make sure he's okay}#{/this also lined up HORRIBLY with my sudden connecting the dots on why riv's features looked so familiar to me}#{/one of those 'i've seen something like that somewhere before' situations; yeah?}#{/i finally figured it out. it has me both cackling and cringing VERY hard at the same time.}#{/i wont divulge anymore here but BOY OH BOY...}
1 note
¡
View note
Note
actually dying for a cooper howard x vaultie!reader smut where they have some slow burn longing steaminess, but coop thinks sheâs too good for him UNTIL she comes in contact with a sex pollen-esque chem and he finally gives in to save her 𼾠please work your magic and elaborate however you want
A Flame in Your Heart
Cooper Howard x Fem Reader (SMUT!!)
CW: NSFW like absolutely filthy yâall, youâve been warned. đ unprotected sex, irradiated cream pie, p in v, p0rn w/ plot, slow burn, flirting, cursing, perverted thoughts, dub-con (because of chem usage though consent is asked and given!) rough sex, dirty talk, choking, praise kink, degradation, squirting, mention of fingering, FEELINGS!! Slight deviation from TV series, possible grammar/spelling mistakes, cooper starts off mean but slowly warms up to reader
AN: I absolutely LOVED this request! I was up all night writing down all my ideas and spent all this morning perfecting it, and this has to be my longest one yet! I thank you for your patience anon and my lovely readers as I finally post this! Hope you enjoy and that I have done your ask justice! â¤ď¸
Life outside of the vault was difficult to say the least. You felt hunger and dehydration in ways youâd never experienced before, going out of your way to do desperate things you would normally never do in order to get said food and water. The heat was unbearable, every stretch of land you walked across had a danger lurking around every corner, and worst of all, youâd never felt so alone. You werenât sure what it was about you, maybe it was because you were new to the surface, maybe it was your nearly perfect skin, but everyone seemed to stare or glare at you when you would walk through. It wasnât until youâd passed through Filly, meeting Ma June that you realized people didnât take kindly to people like you. âVaultiesâ she called them, an audible disdain in her tone, making you look down to remember you were in your blue and gold Vault-Tec suit. âIâll be going then, have a nice day!â You said skiddishly, offering her a kind smile before turning and exiting the shop. You just wanted to make friends, why was that so hard up here? So when your eyes set on a man clad in classic Wild West cowboy clothes, watching smoke settle after a stand off, you werenât sure why but you knew that was who you needed on your side in this world. Before you knew it, your feet were already moving and mouth speaking to him, grabbing his attention.
âI ainât no charity case sweetheart, I donât take on straysâ The ghoul spoke, his southern drawl making him even more memorable than the marred texture of his skin. You looked to the dog that trailed not far behind him as he walked, changing its pace to keep up with the man. âThe dog there with you tells me otherwiseâ you quipped. âAinât my dogâ he responded harshly as he continued walking. âI can make it worth your while!â You yelled, making him stop in his tracks for a moment, a scary sight at first before you worked up the nerve to come closer once he turned back to you. âAnd how you suppose youâd do that?â He asked, and at first you didnât know what to say, the words leaving your mouth before you could really think of a good enough reason. Did nobody like company anymore these days? âWellâŚI can be your scavenger! Pretty good at collecting stuffâ you offered, shaking your bag and making things rattle around inside to prove it, making him give a huff of a chuckle. ââf I wanted a pack mule Iâdâve found a brahmanâ he shot you down. âOkay, then I can be good company to talk to!â You offered. âThey make radios for when I want to listen to someone yackâ he shut down once again. âIâm a good cook! Even with shitty supplies, I can make a stew thatâd put a smile even on the meanest son of a gunâs faceâ you said, hopeful that heâd at least take you for something, but you had a feeling heâd probably turn you down again. âIguana on a stickâs just fineâ he said, though he had to admit the stew sounded good. Reminded him of home before all this wasteland bullshit. âOh, ummâŚâ you said awkwardly, your tone growing quiet and my how it put a sad look in your eyes. The evil part of him liked it, seeing your sweet innocent face all downturned but the part that was still human deep down, the part that hardly ever saw the light of day anymore, had half a mind to let you.
âGot a lotta nerve walkinâ up tâ me, girly. If you somehow been lucky enough that you ainât met dangerous yet, youâre lookinâ at someone who could put you down before youâd even mutter your last wordsâ he threatened, motioning to the double barreled shotgun in his hands. âI know, I saw it first hand. You hold yourself well, I envy that. Iâm new to all of this and just really want someone who can help me hold my own the same wayâ you explained. âLook, I know I donât look like much but please just give me a chanceâ you begged, looking up at him with a fighting spirit in your eyes that he had to admit, he was pretty impressed in seeing in a vaultie. âYou help me, I help you, however that ends up beingâ you offered, standing strong on this and damn if he didnât see a little bit of himself in you at that. He gave a sigh, tilting his head down before shaking it, not believing himself for the words he was about to say. âAlright, but the minute you start dragginâ youâre out, got me?â He said, and he hated the way his cold heart seemed to pump a little faster upon seeing your eyes light up with joy and a smile stretch to your face. âOh thank you, thank you, thank you!â You said, opening your arms up to hug him but being met with the barrel of his gun poking your stomach to keep space between you. âI donât do hugsâ he spoke gruffly, making you back up enough to where heâd drop the gun back to his side. âR-RightâŚsorryâ you apologized, embarrassment washing over you but still glad to finally have someone in your company. âCâmon, I ainât got all day nowâ he said, motioning you to start walking, so you joined him.
Your travels with him certainly werenât at all what you were expecting them to be. From being used as bait, to being tied up with rope most of the time youâd traveled together, or being sent in as his scavenger, you werenât prepared for a lot of the reality you faced with being up on the surface. Most nights made you question why youâd ever left the comfort of the vault, why youâd abandoned a trusty food supply, regulated temperatures, a safe place to sleep that wasnât riddled with radroaches or had the likely hood of waking up to a raider with a knife at your throat for no reason. Then you would remember the experiment in your vault, why you left that awful place for arguably a worse reality on the surface but at least you had freedom. Out here you were free to say what you want, do what you want, consume what you want so long as you could defend yourself incase that supply wasnât unclaimed. Youâd gotten pretty handy with a gun in the most recent weeks. Cooper, you learned one night was his name, using empty glass bottles as targets to help teach you accuracy and how to hit things from a longer range. In exchange, you came a little more useful than he had first thought. You had some useful stuff on you for trade like chems, ammo and food, were a good extra bag to hold stuff in, and you were a better cook than youâd talked about. Sure you had a tendency to talk too much, and you werenât great with a gun, but you were getting there.
âMight I suggest takinâ them clothes instead of wearinâ that suit?â He said, making you look at him weird for suggesting you strip a dead raider of their clothes. âWhy would I do thatâŚ?â You asked, genuinely confused and not sure what he was implying either, he was a hard man to predict. âBecause, people see that shit and get real mad. People up here donât like vaulties or the ones that run âemâ he said and it made sense, it helped you understand why you kept getting evil glares each time someone would look at you or talk to you. You figured he knew best, so you took the shirt and pants from one of the female raiders, tucking them into your bag to change into at a better time. He gave a chuckle watching you do so, apologizing to the dead body profusely as you took their clothes and whatever valuables they had on them for the betterment of your own survival. You were still so naive, part of him was hoping he could slowly start to break and corrupt your way of thinking, but that was a thought for another time.
Before you knew it, night finally began to fall. The sun setting across the horizon gave the air less of a hot, harsh bite as the temperature began to cool rapidly across the sands of the Mojave. All you managed to grab was a pair of beat up, old jeans and a tank top, so as soon as the sun set, the chill set in. As you both set up camp for the night just outside of an abandoned rest stop, you started a fire to cook some of that stew you talked about being good at. He had to admit, it was pretty damn good, likely the best thing heâs had since before the bombs went off. Though even the kindling fire couldnât manage to chase the chill away, watching you run your hands up and down your arms to try and warm up some by it. He felt a slight pang in his heart, watching you shiver like that, how your eyes lit up by the blaze of the fire and your hair seemed to be tousled just right. You were pretty, too pretty to be trekking this wasteland, and certainly too pretty to be trekking it with him of all people as your company. Even he had a heart still, as cold as it was, so out of kindness he shrugged his duster from his shoulders, draping it around you. You looked at the fabric pooled around you, pulling it over you better before looking to him as he sat down across from you again. âAinât no use if the cold gets yaâ he said, making you smile appreciatively at him as you realized what he did. âThank youâ you replied, a slight blush fanning to your cheeks as the chattering of your teeth finally died down and you grew warmer. It smelled like him, sure it had splatters of old dried blood and was rather worn, but it had that gunpowder and smoke smell to it that you associated with him. âDonât say I never did nothinâ for yaâ he replied, trying to sound cold but it didnât come off that way, making you chuckle. âWhat do I owe you?â You asked, making him fall silent for a moment as he pondered the answer to your question. He looked you over for a second before tipping his hat down to cover his face a bit, the signal that he was about to try and get some sleep. âJust keep watch for a bit, Iâll be up in a few hoursâ he responded, and while it wasnât what you were expecting, youâd take it.
He was startled awake a couple hours later when he heard a commotion, you yelling at someone telling them to back off that this place had been claimed. The raider you were up against didnât seem to like that very much, claiming that wasnât how it worked up here. The altercation took a turn for the worst when the man reached for his gun but you were quick to fire and kill him before he could let out a shot. A shaky feeling set in your hands and a horrified expression across your face at the realization that you just killed someone. Cooper, who was certainly wide awake now, was rather impressed by your quick timing and precision, coming up behind you to lay a gloved hand to your shoulder. âWell would ya look at that, looks like them lessons been payinâ off after all. Howâs it feel?â He asked, looking down at you as you stared at the gun in your hands. âHe was yelling at me butâŚhe was aiming at you. I donât really know what came over me, I didnât like that he was going to shoot you so I justâŚI killed himâ you said, recounting the encounter to him as if he hadnât seen it himself. He didnât really know what to think in that moment as you explained how your mind worked, he was proud for sure at your show of improvement with a gun, yet also touched at the same time. No one ever really looked out for him since he started his bounty hunting, he was a well hated man by many but you defended him without really any reason to. Youâd just learned his name not but two weeks ago, and before that he was dragging you around with rope yet you still defended him, had you two really gotten closer in the time thatâs passed since? He wasnât sure, but it was something he could mull over while you were sleeping. âGet some rest vaultie, sunâll be up soonâ he said, knowing you likely wouldnât get much sleep with the adrenaline still coursing through you, but it was at least worth a try, you two had a long day ahead of you.
When you woke up that next morning, things felt a little different between you two. You werenât some annoying little dog following him anymore, you were an equal. He no longer looked at you and treated you like you were lower than him as you both set out across the wastelands, he had respect for you. Hell, he even started talking with you now when you were out traveling which was almost unbelievable. You learned through those conversations that he used to be an actor in Wild West themed films, explaining his outfit, and that he was married before the bombs dropped. You of course told him bits and pieces about yourself in exchange, after all it only felt fair but it was also nice to just finally talk to someone after all this time.
When night time fell again you two sat enjoying a meal by the fire together, only rather than across from each other, he sat next to you, making a blush come to your face as youâd smiled sweetly at him. âGlad to know I donât have germs anymoreâ you said jokingly, making him chuckle. âGive an old man some credit. It ainât exactly all peaches and marmalade out here darlinâ, even cute can be deadlyâ he said, the nickname and him calling you cute sending a deeper blush to your cheeks despite knowing itâs just how he spoke. Whether it was the lack of contact with other people for so long, or just his charm you couldnât quite tell, but it always seemed to have an effect on you. âJust teasinâ you, I get it. Iâd tie me up and use me for bait too if Iâd been doing this as long as you have. Itâs a shit hole out hereâ you said, making him look at you as you dropped the first curse word heâs ever heard from you. âWell Iâll be damned, either Iâm a bad influence or youâre finally growinâ outta that naive shell there, vaultieâ Cooper replied, making you laugh as you saw a smirk stretch to his thin, marred lips, the first one youâd seen in a while that wasnât brought on by drugs, chems or that first sip of a good bottle of alcohol. âProbably bothâ you quipped, making him chuckle. âYeah, probably. Been told I ainât easy to stomachâ he said, making you hum. âYouâre alright in my book, Coopâ you replied with a sweet, genuine smile that matched your tone and was that butterflies you felt in your stomach? Did you just call him Coop? No ones called him that in ages, why did it make his heart start to flutter a bit? âYou ainât so bad yourself, vaultieâ he responded, still affording you that small smile before turning back to his food. âKeep making food this good and I just might have to keep you aroundâ he joked, making you giggle and break the slightly tense silence. âItâs not much but I certainly try. Iâll definitely make sure to stay good at it, I like traveling with youâ you said, unintentionally coming off flirtatious and fuck there it goes again, that feeling in his chest and his stomach like he needed to hit his inhaler but he felt great. What were you doing to him?
âHey, if it isnât too much can I ask you a sort ofâŚpersonal question?â You asked, holding the beat up bowl in your hands as you looked over at him. This was normally the part where he would say no, absolutely not, he wasnât here to be questioned on his personal matters. Yet, with you, it was different. Ever since last night he hasnât been so on edge with you, it was like heâd warmed up to you. âDepends on what youâre askinâ there, sweetheartâ he said, the nickname once again making you blush. âDo youâŚmiss them? Your wife and daughter?â You asked, not sure if it was a good subject or good question to ask but after finding out, you were genuinely curious. He looked down at his bowl again, thinking of the proper response to your question. The old him would have been defensive, told you it was none of your business, but now? He wasnât sure. âAinât a day that goes by that I donât think about âem. About the way I ran out on âem when them bombs droppedâ he answered, making you give him a sad look as genuine guilt filled his tone. This was the most honest and open heâs been with you this whole time. âI feel guilty. Not sure if I feel guilty for runninâ out and leavinâ âem behind or guilty for the way I ran out, been tryinâ tâ figure that out for quite a while now and I still ainât sureâ he added, and you sympathized with that. Everyone has regrets, things theyâve done in the past that they arenât proud of, people up here were no different in that aspect. âWell, in the short time Iâve gotten to know you, Iâve come to understand that everything you do has a valid reason behind it. So even if you feel it was a shitty thing to do, you obviously had a reason for doing so. No one can blame you for trusting your gut, and I donât think you should blame yourself for doing soâ you responded, your hand falling to his as a comforting gesture, your words ringing in his head almost as if youâd opened something in his mind, something heâd never really gave himself to think about before. He looked down at your hand that rested on his, noticing the way you didnât flinch away from him like others did, the way you were brave enough to walk up to him, talk to him, *trust* him when he made it very clear that you shouldnât. It was smaller than his, softer for sure, but warm all the same, then he looked up to see that caring look in your eyes and smile on your face that told him that you cared. âGuess youâre right, still wonder sometimes if it was the right choice to makeâ he replied. âI understand. Everyone has regrets, we all look at the past and hold at least something that weâve done before in regret, itâs what makes us humanâ you said, making him give a huff as a chuckle. âYou got anybody?â He asked, making you look down as you moved your feet along the dirt. âAn ex-husband, but not anyone I really care about, no. My parents passed a few years before the bombings and he and I split up when I caught him cheating on me with some other woman in the vault..â you explained, not sure why it hurt you to tell the tale still, but you felt it was only fair considering what youâd asked of him to share. âSorry tâ hear thatâ Cooper said, making you chuckle weakly, a somber look coming to your face that made his heart wrench. âI havenât exactly been in love since, and considering he and I split up just a little over ten years ago, really says something I guess, huh?â You asked, trying to laugh to bring up the mood, knowing you sounded pathetic. âHe was the fool, not you darlinâ. He was the one skippinâ out on one hell of a womanâ Cooper said, making you look to him and blush a bit as you gave a chuckle at his response.
âThanksâ you replied appreciatively and with a smile before casting your gaze down to see your hands were still connected and it left you blushing harder with embarrassment, youâd been holding his hand this entire time without realizing it. âOh my gosh, Iâm so sorry! I didnât mean to make you uncomfortable if I have I-â ârelax vaultieâ he cut you off, pushing your hand back down onto his to assure you that he was far from uncomfortable. âItâsâŚrather nice actuallyâ he admitted, making you feel relieved but your heart fluttered in your chest from it. A thick tension soon began to set in between you both after that night, something of an unspoken, kindling romance beginning to develop. âThen there it can stayâ you said, making him smile softly at you, tipping his hat at you as a silent thank you.
Months passed on like this, where youâd spend the days scavenging, picking the land for its resources you could find and hunting bounties by day, then spending your nights by a fire growing closer and closer with every passing day. Through your shared meals, jokes, deep conversations, and plenty of near death experiences, you started to notice your fondness of the ghoul you traveled with. The way youâd hang onto his words with that southern accent that seemed to pull at your heart strings, or the way youâd go out of your way to stand between him and a stray bullet. Youâd helped him on more than one occasion in getting out of a sticky spot, or getting him the stuff he needed to keep from turning feral. In return, he started to notice he was feeling the same towards you. There was this sudden need to keep you safe, to do nicer things for you, to speak better towards you, even flirt with you at times. Some nights thereâd be so much tension in the air, itâs a miracle you havenât jumped each other yet. Though in his eyes, as much as his heart yearned for you, he knew you were too good for him. Youâd been hurt before, and he had a reputation for hurting people, feeling undeserving of even just the sweet smiles and company you afford him even now. You didnât need someone like him, you needed a good man, someone who didnât kill for a living, someone who could treat you right, someone who didnât look the way he did. You were soft and warm, he was rough and cold, though he supposed thatâs where the term âopposites attractâ came from. So even when he was a whole bottle deep, he was sure to hold his tongue to a certain point.
Some of those nights around the fire were spent sober, others not so much, and this night happened to be one of those nights spent under the influence. You two had stumbled across a mini-mart, doing your best to out run the radstorm that had been trailing you guys for hours, coming in just to find whatever supplies you could to make it through the next week and possibly hunker down for the night. So imagine your surprise when you seemed to have found the largest chem stache youâd both ever laid eyes on. âCoop! Come here, you gotta see thisâ you said, making him run towards you to make sure you werenât hurt or in trouble. His nerves were eased once he saw you, fully intact. âTell me Iâm not seeing shitâ you said, pointing to all of the supplies sitting in a box on the table, joined by other supplies around it. You both looked at each other in complete and utter disbelief, this would keep you stocked for months, maybe even a whole year if you conserved it well. âWell ainât that just the prettiest fuckinâ sightâ he said. There was no way a horde of chems this large and this valuable was just completely unprotected you reasoned, so you routed around the place, scoping out for any raiders, straggling traders or ferals who happened to still be around. It was as if heaven was shining down on you both as you found no one around, seemed like no one had been here for days. So you did the most logical thing anyone would do in this situation. Stuff each of your bags to the brim of drugs of all varieties! Seeing as you had food, chems and even some clean water and alcohol lying around, Cooper locked and barricaded the door shut, proposing it could be a good spot to sleep for the night. With a radstorm approaching, it was best to have a roof over your heads to keep out the rain and potential radiation sickness that came with it. âThis is the closest fuckinâ thing to a slice of heaven Iâve seen in agesâ he said, aside from you is what played in his mind but he couldnât speak that out loud, no matter how much he wanted to. âYou said it!â you replied, and itâs even better with you here you thought, but thought it best to keep it to yourself. He plopped down on the couch, kicking his feet up to rest on the small table that seemed to be in shambles, enjoying a tape that was playing on the TV that he was surprised to still see functioning. âHoly shit, this thing still works?â You asked, amazed to see working technology out in the wastelands, sitting next to him as you watched it with him. He gave a smirk at your reaction, thinking it was cute the way your eyes would light up when you got all excited over something. Deep down it made him want to give you everything you laid eyes on like that just to see it pointed towards him. âGuess soâ he replied, enjoying your excitement only to see you turn and look his way, which was his signal to stop staring holes into you before he gets caught. âI dunno about you baby doll, but I ainât about to spend tonight sober with this stache sittinâ here ân front of usâ he said, making you laugh as he routed through all the different drugs and chems til he found what he was looking for.
In the process of searching through it all, a small metal box fell to the floor at your feet. It looked like a box of mentats only the design was different, instead of the characteristic green and white box was a red one covered with hearts labeled DN-Chem. You supposed the worst that could happen was turn into the man sitting next to you, which you figured wasnât the worst fate to succumb to all things considered, so you went against all better judgement and said fuck it, popping two of the mentat like chems and chasing it with the vodka heâd found to wait for it to take effect. âThe hell is DN?â He asked, looking at the box, wondering what it was you took. âDonât know, guess weâll find out here soon because I took twoâ you said, taking another sip from the bottle of vodka he passed your way, and he gave a chuckle as you handed it back to him. âYou come a mighty long way, little ladyâ he commented before setting the metal pill box down. He took the bottle from you, taking a swig, then placing one of the small viles into his inhaler before taking a hit of it then lying back, breathing a sigh of relief as it and the alcohol entered his system like the perfect remedy to any ailment. As about a half an hour rolled by, you waited for the high to set in but it never came, instead you were just getting hot, like really hot. There werenât any windows open, and it was night time so you shouldnât be this uncomfortably hot for how it was but you felt like you were on fire. âShit, itâs hot as hell in hereâŚâ you complained, shaking off your jacket that youâd picked off of some raider a few weeks back, making him look to you curiously. âLightweightâ he quipped, making you chuckle. âAccept I donât feel anything, I just feel hotâ you said, making him hum with intrigue before turning back to the TV. âGive it some time, youâre new to all this. âm sure your body is wonderinâ what the hell you just put in itâ he said, and he had a good point, maybe it was just a side effect of not doing them so often compared to his every day use.
As time went on, you began to notice the way your eyes couldnât help but be glued to him, more specifically glued to the way his legs were now spread as he sat back. You wondered to yourself what he looked like beneath all that cowboy get up, what his reaction would be like to see you getting on your knees for him and slotting yourself between his spread legs. You shook your head to try and rid yourself of such inappropriate thoughts, but what you couldnât stop no matter how hard you tried was the feeling of arousal beginning to pool in your panties. Sure he flirted with you every now and again, but you doubt he felt towards you the same way you did for him. To him you were sure you were likely more akin to a pet than a friend, useful and nice to have around, but not anything further. At least so you thought. Youâd rather hoped you were wrong in assuming so, that maybe he saw you the same way you saw him. You bit your lip as you tried bouncing your leg to relieve the ache between your thighs, a light pink dusting your face and neck even up to the tips of your ears, but nothing worked. Even as you closed your eyes, all you could picture was you laid out on the couch beneath him, or bent over it with him behind you, or you riding him on it. âBeen awful quiet. You doinâ alright over there, sweetheart?â Cooper asked you, and the audible whimper you let out from the nickname left you completely embarrassed. You clasped a hand over your mouth, god you were horrified but he gave a grin and a chuckle in response. âIâm so sorry, I donât know whatâs gotten into me all the sudden. I feel soâŚweird?â you said, unsure if that was really the proper word to explain it but it was the only way you could really word it off the top of your head with how much your brain felt as if it was turning to mush. âYa took some chems, itâs gonna feel a bit fuzzyâ he said, trying to assure you that feeling a little funny was normal, but this? This didnât feel normal, not even for a chem high. You tried your best to swallow harshly, doing everything you could to try and relieve the dry ache you felt in your throat at the moment upon looking at him. You grabbed the bottle of vodka, taking a few sips but even that couldnât grant you bliss from it. The throbbing in your core was driving you absolutely insane. You swore up and down that it was like you could feel your heartbeat in your chest, stomach, and in your cunt all at the same time. âNo, this is differentâŚI donât think what I took was a normal chem, CoopâŚâ you said, trying not to panic at the effects that were setting in but god you felt like you were absolutely feral. He turned to look at you, watching as you clamped your thighs together and the red that fell over your face. âI feel like an animal in heatâ you said bluntly, making him go into a near coughing fit as you took him off guard. However that piqued his interest enough to pick up the little metal box again to see what it was you took. âI ainât ever heard of a chem that does that, was that DN shit the only stuff you took?â He asked, growing slightly concerned for you and whether he had a possible horde of laced chems, or just an extremely horny woman on his hands. Speaking of hands, you were lost in thought staring at them, at the way they gripped the couch like you wanted him to grip your thighs, at the way they looked in those leather gloves he always wore. You wondered how it would feel wrapped around your throat, or how it would feel if his fingers were buried deep inside of you. Shit. This was getting out of control.
âHey, ya with me still?â He asked, snapping to try and get your attention back on the matter at hand, making you shake your head yes as you broke from your perverted thoughts. âIs that DN shit the only thing you took?â He asked again, making you shake your head yes once more, because you knew damn well your voice was going to betray you the moment you tried to speak. That had to be it, it was the only thing that was different out of it all and the only thing heâd never heard of before. He knew it wasnât the vodka either because he was drinking it with you, so if it was affecting you, it would have affected him and it hadnât.
It took him a minute to put two and two together before he finally realized the abbreviations stood for Date Night, reading the instructions and effects on the inside of the tinâs lid. âShit..â he said as he read it, realizing this was a hand made thing thrown into the bunch by whoever was running this place. âDid you read the lid before you popped them pills?â He asked, making you go wide eyed. As if this couldnât get any fucking worse, this shit show could have been avoided had you just read the inside of the lid. âThere was instructions?? Oh my godâŚwhat the fuck did I take?â You asked, concerned for yourself and the tone he had while reading it. âSomethinâ that the creator of it called Date Night. Looks like itâs aâŚwell looks like itâs a handmade sex chemâ he said, making you cover your face with your hands out of sheer embarrassment, youâd never wanted to die out in a radstorm more than you did right now. âPlease tell me youâre fucking joking, cooperâŚâ you whined, watching him read it more. âHow much of it did you take?â He asked, almost scared to know and you were scared to know why. âTwo?â You replied, making him whistle at that as he read it. âFuckinâ hell sugar..â he said through a chuckle, and that nickname made a shiver run through you, sending electric bolts straight to your throbbing cunt. You did your best to bite back the whimper. âYouâre only sâpossed take one, and with you beinâ new tâ all this, I wouldnât have taken more than halfâ he said, making you just wish you could just dig a hole and die in it already. âFuck meâŚwait, shit! N-Not literally fuck me I- well I mean Iâd like if you did butâŚFUCK! Forgive me Cooper, Iâm so sorry, I can hardly think straightâ you said, making him chuckle. âWell sweetheart, I think you and I both know thereâs only one good fix for this situationâ he said, making you whimper pathetically at the thought, your thighs squeezing together even more as you tried to fight to stay sane. Your eyes cast downwards to his lap once more, seeing the tent forming in his pants, clearly you werenât the only one all worked up here. âI donât want to make you feel like you have to, Coop. I can run off and take care of myself if it makes you uncomfort-â you rambled but before you could finish, his hand cupped the side of your face, pulling you in for a long awaited kiss. You moaned into it without meaning to, feeling the way your body immediately relaxed upon wrapping your arms around him with no hesitation as the sweet innocent kiss turned passionate and dirty rather quickly.
âI wonât lie tâ you, doinâ this with you has passed my mind more times than Iâd care to admit, but I donât wanna cross that line unless you really want thisâ he said, looking into your eyes and making sure that this was truly what you wanted, that you felt the same way he did. âCoop, I know Iâm under the influence of whatever the fuck this drug is, but trust me when I say, Iâd be just as good with it sober. Been thinking about it for probably just as long as you have, if Iâm honest with you. I want this, I want you and right now I want you so fucking bad that I might lose my mind if you donât fuck meâ you answered bluntly, taking him by surprise at just the sheer amount of absolute filth that left your otherwise innocent mouth, making him chuckle at your use of curse words and how desperate you were for him. âThat so sugar?â He asked with a grin, enjoying teasing you at your neediest moments, including now. âGod yes, Cooper please..â you begged, nearly moaning in reply and heâd spent time mulling over it before, denying himself the chance but just as the chem stache was a pot of gold, he took this as one of the best opportunities being placed in his lap by whatever higher power existed out there, making him waste no time in kissing you once more. âGood, because I donât think Iâd be able to hold myself back once weâve startedâ he said, and the idea made you moan. âDonât want you to hold back, want all of youâ you said, and your wish was his command.
By the time your brain could finally catch up with you again, your clothes were strewn out all around you, your tank top hanging over the back of the couch, your jeans thrown haphazardly on the arm rest behind you, his pants on the floor, his hat on the table and shirt and duster having fallen somewhere behind the couch. By now, youâd already cum on his fingers twice, and on his cock once, this was your fourth round and this shit still had you on fire. âYes!! Oh fuck, Cooper!â you moaned as your legs wrapped around his hips, keeping him as close to you as you could get, your fingers digging crescent shapes and puffy red lines into his back that unfortunately he knew wouldnât stay long thanks to his ability to heal stupidly fast. âDoinâ so good for me, baby doll. Look so pretty like this for me, all splayed out like a needy little whoreâ he praised and degraded through his groans, making you moan and roll your eyes into the back of your head at the praise mixed with degradation as his cock was drilling deep inside you like tonight was all you guys had. âYeah, you like that, huh sweet thing? Like it when I tell you how good it feels and call you names?â He asked, making you nod your head yes because there wasnât a single thought in that brain of yours other than his name, which you spoke like a mantra. âNever knew such a sweet lilâ thing like you would be such a dirty little minx. FuckâŚenough to make a man like me go feral, ya know that?â he said, making you giggle as you moved his free hand up to your throat, urging him to choke you, and he groaned at the sight. Your kiss swollen lips all puffy and shining with spit, your cheeks dusted a constant pink that grew darker anytime his cock brushed that spot deep inside that made you cling to him, your eyes half lidded, looking up at him like he was your savior. It made him absolutely rock hard knowing youâd pick him over anyone else in this god forsaken wasteland. âMy, you are just a little freak, ainât you? Oh we are gonna have fun together, you and me honeyâ he promised, squeezing your throat tight enough to restrict your airflow but not enough to hurt or cause any damage. Just enough to get that puddle of a brain of yours all fuzzy as you got closer to your fourth orgasm of the night. âCooperâŚâm so close, so close please!!â You begged, feeling the heavy drag of his cock as he pounded into you, leaving you damn near screaming as it nudged your cervix and that spongy little bundle of nerves deep inside. âGo on honey, I gotchya. Let go for me, wanna see those pretty faces and hear those pretty noises you makeâ he said, angling his hips just right to hit that spot over and over again. âOh fuck, oh fuck Iâm gonna cum again, I-â you warned before your moans rose in pitch as your walls clamped around him, gushing on his cock as your orgasm hit you like a freight train. Your body arched off the couch, stars filling your vision for a moment as you felt your release gush out and coat your inner thighs, screaming his name like it was your only chance at salvation. âWell ainât I just the damn luckiest man in the wastelands right now, got me a pretty little vaultie and sheâs a gusherâ he said, making you whimper at his teasing but judging by the way he emptied himself inside you for the second time, you took it as a sign that he liked that about you. âHoly shit, I-I didnât know I could do thatâ you said, thoroughly shocked with what your brain and body were doing as they almost seemed to almost be working against each other. âDo it again for meâ he said, grabbing you and moving you both to where you were straddling him this time. His hands rested on your hips, helping guide you as you speared yourself on his dick with ease from how absolutely soaked you were, making you both throw your head back and moan. âNow thatâs a damn good sightâ he said, making you lean in to kiss him once more as his hands helped you start and keep a steady rhythm with your hips. It was definitely going to be a long night, but one you two have been needing for months, maybe even longer.
Itâs a good thing ghouls have remarkable recovery time, because in order to finally get you sated and back to normal, you both had to spend all night going at it. Granted, it was aided by the mix of pent up sexual tension and pent up sexual frustration, but it was dawn before you both had gotten to a point where you could even *try* and fall sleep. First few times was on the couch between missionary, doggy and you riding him, next was you bent over it, with your pretty legs spread and ass in the air for him. Then, you used the arm rest of the couch as a pillow beneath your hips as he stood up while you laid out on the couch. He liked that one a lot for the way your tits would bounce with each and every forceful thrust into you, jolting your body. After that, it was done standing up with your back pressed against a wall, your legs and arms wrapped around him to keep him deep inside of you and fill you til he had nothing left to give you. From that point on, the rest of the night was all a hormone-hazed blur, but you knew well that he took care of you. You woke up unbelievably sore, your joints aching in places that you had no idea could even ache, a swollen, angry throb between your legs for the harsh, almost punishing treatment to your pussy followed by bruises, bite marks, scratch marks, hand prints etc. littered your skin as you woke up curled into Cooperâs side. You gave a gravelly groan as the sun shone in your eyes through the windows, making him chuckle at the way you were such a ray of sunshine except in the morning. Coming to learn that you absolutely *hated* mornings. Though you suppose you started to enjoy them more since traveling with him. âMorninâ sunshineâ he said coyly, making you groan disapprovingly at the way the sun was in your eyes, making you hold your hand up to cast a shadow on your face and grant you some relief. âMorningâ you answered, your voice hoarse and half gone from sleep and all your activities that transpired the previous night. âAinât that a pretty sightâ he said, turning and seeing you curled up to him, naked, your hair all messy from sleep and the hickeys and bite marks littering your skin, making you chuckle. âLast night was definitely something, canât believe youâve been holding all *that* out on meâ you joked, making him give a dry laugh. âCould say the same thing about you, sugar. Had no idea that mind a yours could be so filthy. Youâre a wild thing to party with, lilâ ladyâ he teased, sliding his arm around you to keep you close, making you hum as you lay soft, appreciative kisses to his collarbone and chest. âYouâre fun too, and thank you for taking care of me last night. Iâm sorry that it ended up happening the way that it did, I wanted to work up the courage and tell you some other way, I really did, but I guess life had other plansâ you said making him chuckle as he saw you blush when he kissed your head. âDrunk words are sober thoughts they say, so Iâd say I made out pretty good. But donât sweat it, not sure how I deserved someone as good as you, but itâs good to know I ainât as hard to stomach as most people sayâ he said, pulling you in for a soft, heartfelt kiss. âI think you are just perfect, Cooperâ you said, your hand resting on his scarred chest as you looked at him with that gaze he swore heâd do anything to see pointed his way.
âYou really wanna be my girl?â He asked softly, sounding shocked and with some self doubt still lacing his tone, but he had to be sure this was what you wanted outside of the drugâs effects. He cared for you deeply, in a way that he hasnât felt in a very long time, but maybe you were just the right person for him to finally open his heart up to. His question made you giggle as your heart fluttered in your chest with excitement. âI absolutely do, I meant it when I said it last night, I mean it just as much now. I think weâve danced around it for long enough, donât you?â you replied, making him smile the most genuinely happy smile youâve seen him wear since youâd met. âJust checkinââ he said, before laying a sweet kiss to your lips, wishing every morning could be like this one. Maybe it could, now that you were here with him.
#fallout x reader#fallout smut#fallout#cooper howard smut#cooper howard x reader#cooper howard#sole survivor#cooper howard x you#the ghoul#the ghoul smut#the ghoul x reader#the ghoul x you#asks
3K notes
¡
View notes
Text
#30 - "Your Choice"
Smaugust 2024
I am very fond of the second arc protagonists. They are my favorite collective of plot focus characters, which may be evident by the fact that I've been drawing them more than any other in this challenge. They are a very charming group, even if a few possible character connections are vastly underdeveloped (Moon and Turtle, Winter and Turtle, and Winter and Kinkajou could probably form very strong bonds if they were explored).
The flipside of fondness is usually the formation of strong opinions. I think about these guys a lot. One thing I initially thought was fine, but then struck me as strange on a revisit was the ending of Moonwatcher's book. You have the group (sans Winter), who previously struggled to accept Moon for her unintentionally invasive powers, ostensibly overcome their mistrust of her and solidify their respective bonds with her. Kinkajou in particular tells her that, because she makes no secret of her thoughts anyway, it doesn't matter to her that Moon can read her mind. Up to there it is all very wholesome and heartwarming. Moonwatcher then decides to give them an out, sharing the secret of Skyfire as a way to block her powers. This is a good and very noble gesture, really showing her trustworthiness and respect for their privacy here.
But then they actually take her up on that offer, right after stating they are over their misgivings. I get why they do it--Moonwatcher's uncontrollable power is really inconvenient and annoying to be around--but backtracking 5 seconds later makes their previous declaration of acceptance ring a bit hollow. If I could make a choice here, I would really have liked this to turn into a long-running character arc for the group, where they gradually learn to trust Moon and eventually decide that they don't need the Skyfire anymore, taking it off for good. And Moon in turn could work on refining control over her power so she can be around her friends without accidentally reading every thought. Maybe all of that could have been a scene in the arc 2 finale. But at the very least I would have liked for Kinkajou to stick with her original declaration and reject the Skyfire outright, signaling to Moon that--contrary to her mother's words--the powers are not a curse and that she doesn't need to be ashamed of them.
I guess here is an idea for potential fanfiction: Make them chuck the Skyfire in the bin. Let Moon see that her friends choose to hang out with her even if they can't block her powers.
-----
Long comic today. Sorry it took a while to come out. I think this is the longest one I've drawn for this challenge too.
Just one more day and then Smaugust will be done. I hope you have been enjoying this so far. Thanks for sticking with me.
#wings of fire#dragon#wof#digital art#wof art#flawseer art#smaugust#smaugust2024#smaugust 2024#wof kinkajou#wof moonwatcher#wof rainwing#wof nightwing#wof skyfire#flawseer story#flawseer talk
1K notes
¡
View notes
Text
A DAY IN THE LIFE... WITH A CAT
Wherein Sukuna takes care of your cat for a day, despite his indifferences with it.
warning: animal cruelty
Your boyfriend, Ryomen Sukuna, is obviously not very fond of cats. Or to any living and breathing creature at all. But most especially your cat.
Sukuna hates it. Despise it even. He wishes it to be gone with just one flick of his finger just so the silly furball wouldn't take his time away from you. He hopes it'll get tired of you and run away someday because why are you always up on its face?
But then, that would make you sad. So he won't actually do anything to harm it, as much as he can.
To Sukuna, your cat is the most unearthly being that has ever walked on earth. Always tailing you around like a constant shadow, a menacing shadow. He dislikes it so much that it gets more of your attention than his.
âSo cute!â
Sukuna watches the way your eyes glint in delight, squealing and feet kicking in the air while you're turned to your stomach right by the floor, playing with the little kitten you adopted. You had the most beautiful and widest grin spread on your face, and all because of an animal.
You can't seriously be so happy over that?
It has been a month since that kitten entered your life, and you hadn't been the same since. Well, you are the same, it's just Sukuna being exaggerated.
Why wouldn't he? You barely even look at him anymore because you're too focused on doting and feeding that animal, to the point that he's already making it a silent competition between him and the kitten about who wins your affections. And the cat wins every time. Every fucking time.
You're so head over heels about the white-furred kitten and he will never understand why. It's just another responsibility for you, another creature that will just distract you from your daily living, the daily living in question being the time that you're supposed to be doing with him instead.
âLook, Kuna!â You cheered, holding the cat by its arms to show the kitten to him, the said animal wearing small little glasses that would fit its little face.
Sukuna could only sneer, a frown obviously etched in his lip. âHe looks pathetic. Get him out.â
âThat's mean. Don't listen to him.â You turned the cat to face you and covered its ears, as if it'll understand what Sukuna says. The cat in return hisses at Sukuna, which made him scoff in disbelief.
Why are you even treating the kitten like a real baby? It looks so ugly!
But despite his inner thoughts, he actually finds himself caring for the cat, begrudgingly.
It's a furry dirty cat. He would only bring chaos all around your shared apartment. It probably doesn't even know how to clean itself. Sukuna would always think.
But he never really had a choice whenever you're gone at home, and he's left tending to the catâs crazy needs.
âWill you fucking stay still?â Sukuna holds the cat by its scruff, not too tight though, just enough to hold him up to meet his gaze. The white kitten was all wet after Sukuna just gave him a bath. It meowed at him helplessly, making him smirk to finally see it in distress. âYou're a handful, kitten. Why does she like you so much?â
This must've been the longest day for him yet, with you leaving Sukuna with the task to shower the kitten in your place because you'll be out the whole day. Who's he to disobey you anyway?
He wrapped the kitten in a towel, then took him by the counter. He let it sit there for a moment while it was licking its paws, while he rummaged through the cabinets to look for the hair dryer that you always used for the cat. Once he had it in hand, he faced the kitten again, his eyes glaring at the small creature who's just looking at him curiously.
This? This is the cat that you fawn over? He looks even ugly when he's drenched.
He could only shake his head at the thought, before plugging in the hair dryer so he could do his work. The cat tried to run away when he pulled him close, the hair dryer making a loud blowing sound as he fanned it all over the cat's body. A smile would tug on Sukuna's lips, finding the cat's helpless state funny whenever it meows in discomfort at his presence.
Well, let's just say it wasn't a very pleasant experience for the poor animal. As much as it is for Sukuna.
âYeah, you look horrible. I know.â He chuckled darkly, gazing at the now dried-and-furry-again cat, all thanks to him.
He carried the cat and put it down the floor, letting it run away. He sighs, brushing a tired hand on his nape before he goes over to slump on the couch, resting his eyes for a moment. He could hear the thumps of the kitten running around, stumbling over who knows what, but he couldn't care less. Right now, Sukuna needs to have a moment. It was surely a new experience for him, and something that he will never do again.
It didn't take long for the kitten to go back to him though. It easily jumped on the couch, climbing straight to his lap. He groaned, feeling the cat tapping its little paws on his skin, opening his eyes to see it looking at him, expecting, or perhaps, asking for something?
âWhat do you want now?â
The kitten meowed, before jumping off his lap and heading straight to a little cabinet by the wall, where his cat food was hidden.
Oh, it's smart. He'll give him that.
âYou're hungry?â He asked, raising an eyebrow at it. âGo starve yourself.â
Which wouldn't happen really, because the kitten started meowing furiously at him, which jolted all his senses awake. He cursed underneath his breath, letting out a grunt, standing up so he could give whatever the thing that the creature needed.
It was a very long and tiring day for him indeed. But at the end of the day, he's got the cat settled right above his chest, and he's petting its head softly as it lets out a purr. The catâs tail would brush across his wrist, a sign that the cat must've been pleased with the gesture.
âI'll let you live longer.â He frowned, a low huff escaping from his lips as the cat only looked at him. âJust remember your place in this house.â Flicking the catâs forehead softly as a finality, before he pushes it off and lets it fall on the floor, the cat swiftly landing on its feet.
After all, his pleasure is not his top priority, but yours. So, if keeping you happy would mean having this little cat between the two of you, then he might just let it for a while. For a while. Maybe. Depends if the cat crosses a line.
#gojo is the cat#jjk#jujutsu kaisen#jjk x reader#jujutsu kaisen fluff#jjk fic#jjk fluff#ryomen sukuna#can you even imagine sukuna with a cat???#sukuna x reader#jujutsu sukuna#fem reader#fluff#sukuna fluff#sukuna ryomen#jujutsu kaisen ryomen#âtaste of sky âď¸
2K notes
¡
View notes
Text
No Nut November
Lando Norris x Reader
Summary: Lando made a bet with his friends to give No Nut November a try but, as his girlfriend, you have other plans
Warnings: 18+ content and Lando shaving his head
You canât believe Lando is actually going through with this. When he first told you about his silly bet with the other Quadrant guys to see who can go the longest without ânuttingâ in November, you thought he was joking.
But no, he insists he has to see it through now.
You roll your eyes in exasperation, âBabe, this is ridiculous. You know I have needs too.â
Lando just laughs and pulls you into a hug. âItâs just a month, love. Weâll be fine.â
âA whole month though? Iâll explode!â You whine dramatically.
He kisses your forehead. âYou can manage, I believe in you.â
The first week actually goes smoothly enough. You figure you can handle this if you really try. Maybe it will even be good for your relationship, taking a break from the physical stuff for a bit.
But soon the desire starts creeping up on you more and more. Laying in bed one night, you roll over and start kissing Landoâs neck. He makes a small noise of protest and scoots away. âCome on, Y/N, you know we canât.â
You huff in frustration. âBut Lando, I need you.â Your hands start to wander under the sheets.
He catches your wrist gently. âNuh uh, thatâs against the rules.â
âScrew the rules!â You cry in exasperation.
Lando just shakes his head, clearly trying not to smile. âStay strong, love. Only three more weeks to go.â
As the days pass, you get more and more worked up. Everything Lando does seems to turn you on now â the way he bites his lip in concentration, the flex of muscles when he lifts weights, even just the sound of his laugh.
One day after his workout, youâre waiting when he gets out of the shower, wearing his favorite lingerie set.
His eyes widen at the sight, but he steels himself. âThatâs not going to work but I appreciate the effort,â he says with a cheeky grin.
You let out a dramatic wail. âLando, please, Iâm losing my mind here!â
He just keeps teasingly shaking his head as you continue your onslaught of pleading and temptation. You try every trick and tactic you can think of but he refuses to give in.
As November drags on, youâre utterly frustrated. At this point, itâs become a game and youâre determined not to lose. Thereâs no way Lando can hold out for the whole month when you look this damn good!
One evening, you decide to pull out all the stops. As Landoâs cooking dinner, you come up behind him, wrapping your arms around his waist. Standing on your tiptoes, you begin kissing his neck the way you know drives him crazy.
He tenses up immediately. âY/N ...â he says warningly.
âShhh ...â You whisper. âJust focus on cooking. Iâll stop if you really want me to.â Even as you say it, your hands drift lower, teasing along the waistband of his shorts.
Landoâs breath hitches but he keeps stirring the pasta valiantly. You continue with your ministrations, feathering kisses across his shoulders. When you nip his earlobe, he lets out a low groan.
âThatâs it baby, you know you want this,â you purr. Your fingers dip below the elastic of his briefs to tease along his hip bones.
Lando curses under his breath, his resolve clearly weakening. You seize the opportunity to deepen the kisses, sucking at the sensitive spot on his neck. Your other hand trails up his chest, fingertips circling over his shirt.
âY/N, pleaseââ he gasps out. The pasta is now dangerously close to boiling over but neither of you care anymore.
Grinning in triumph, you spin Lando around and crash your lips to his in a searing kiss. He kisses you back feverishly, his hands coming up to cup your face as he walks you backward toward the bedroom.
***
Lando kicks the bedroom door shut behind you as his lips meet yours again hungrily. All thoughts of No Nut November are clearly out the window now.
Your hands fumble urgently with the hem of his shirt, breaking the kiss just long enough to tug it over his head. He returns the favor, peeling off your top and bra in one smooth motion.
Skin pressing against skin, you both groan at the contact youâve been craving. Landoâs hands grip your hips, steering you toward the bed until the back of your legs hit the mattress. You let yourself fall backward, pulling him down on top of you.
Your lips find each other again as your hands explore eagerly. Lando kisses down your jaw to your neck, nipping and sucking in a way that makes you squirm against him.
âGod Iâve missed this,â you breathe out as his fingers trail over your breast.
He hums in agreement, his touch lighting sparks across your skin. Your back arches off the bed as his mouth closes over your nipple.
Tangling your hands in his hair, you guide him lower, gasping when his lips reach the waistband of your leggings. He looks up at you questioningly and you nod eagerly.
In one smooth motion he tugs them off, followed swiftly by your underwear. Youâre completely bare before him now and trembling in anticipation.
Landoâs eyes drink you in hungrily. âFuck, youâre so beautiful,â he growls before diving in.
You cry out as his tongue finds your clit, gripping the sheets tightly. He works you expertly, ramping up the pressure until you are writhing and moaning. Your orgasm builds fast and hard, his name tumbling from your lips.
âYes, yes Lando! Donât stop!â You pant out. Your climax crashes over you powerfully, stars bursting behind your eyelids.
Lando works you through it gently before moving back up to kiss you deeply. You can taste yourself on his lips and it makes you impossibly more turned on.
Reaching for his belt, you make quick work of the rest of his clothes. Taking him in your hand, you stroke him firmly as he groans into your mouth.
âNeed you ... now,â you gasp out urgently.
Lando lines himself up at your entrance, his eyes questioning. You nod eagerly and he pushes inside you slowly. You both moan long and low at the feeling of him filling you up.
He sets a steady rhythm, rocking into you deeply. You wrap your legs around his waist, pulling him impossibly deeper. The coil in your core starts building again right away.
âFaster, Lando, please,â you beg. He obliges, snapping his hips quicker. You drag your nails down his back making him shudder.
The sound of skin slapping on skin and your mingled moans fill the room. You can tell Lando is getting close by the way he tenses and swells inside you.
Reaching down between you, he circles your clit rapidly. âCome on baby, come with me,â you urge him on. Your words send him over the edge with a choked groan.
His release triggers your second powerful orgasm, your walls contracting around him.
You cling to each other, riding out the aftershocks together. Lando collapses on top of you, nuzzling into your neck. You stroke his hair gently, holding him close.
âGuess you lost the bet,â you tease after a moment.
He chuckles against your skin. âSo worth it.â
You tilt his chin up to kiss him softly, filled with love and contentment. Who cares about some silly internet challenge anyway? You and Lando have all you need right here.
***
The next morning, you wake up tangled in Landoâs arms, smiling at the memories of last night. Stretching contentedly, you roll over to face him.
âGood morning,â you murmur, leaning in to kiss him.
He kisses you back softly. âMorning, love.â
You run your fingers through his curls. âI donât think Iâve ever appreciated your hair more than I did last night,â you say with a grin.
Lando laughs but then his expression turns serious. âAbout that ... thereâs something I should tell you about the bet.â
You raise your eyebrows. âOh?â
âPart of the deal was that the first one to fail No Nut November has to shave their head,â he admits.
âWhat? No!â You gasp, clutching protectively at his hair. âYou are not shaving these beautiful curls, I forbid it!â
He sighs. âI donât want to but I made a deal. The lads will never let me hear the end of it if I donât follow through.â
You pout dramatically. âCanât you just lie and say you succeeded? They never need to know!â
Lando shakes his head. âTheyâd see right through me. Iâm rubbish at lying.â
âBut your hair ...â you whine sadly.
âIt will grow back,â he assures you, though he doesnât look happy about it either.
You bite your lip, thinking hard. âWhat if you just donât tell them we had sex? Then as far as they know, youâre still in the running and you donât have to shave your head! Donât think of it as lying ⌠think of it as omitting the truth.â
He considers this. âI guess that could work as long as they donât find out somehow.â
âExactly! Our secret is safe with me,â you swear solemnly. Crisis averted!
Later that day when Lando hops on stream with the Quadrant guys, you make yourself scarce to avoid any accidental slip-ups.
Lando greets his friends cheerfully. âAlright mates, howâs everyone holding up?â
âStill going strong,â Max Fewtrell reports. âYou?â
âYep, all good here,â Lando lies smoothly.
You listen from the other room, praying they donât notice anything amiss. But a few minutes later, you hear Max exclaim âLando, whatâs that on your neck?â
Lando sounds flustered. âWhat? Nothing!â
âThatâs definitely a hickey! Heâs got hickies all over!â Max crows. âYou broke, didnât you Norris?â
You gasp, realizing in horror that you must have left marks last night.
Lando tries to deny it but eventually crumbles under their interrogation. âAlright fine, I gave in. But donât tell Y/N that I told you!â
Raucous laughter ensues, followed by teasing demands that he shave his head immediately.
You rush in frantically. âNo, stop! It was my fault, I seduced him!â You blurt out.
More laughter. âWow mate, sheâs really got you wrapped around her finger!â
Lando rubs his neck ruefully. âYeah, couldnât resist her even with the bet.â He winks at you.
You bite your lip guiltily. âIâm sorry I got you in trouble.â
He just smiles and pulls you into his lap. âIâd lose every bet in the world for you.â
Ignoring his cheering friends, he kisses you tenderly. You sigh happily, running your fingers through his curls one last time.
If this bet means sacrificing his lovely locks, youâre definitely making up for it tonight.
***
Despite your pleas and protests, Lando is determined to go through with the bet.
âI gave my word, love. Gotta shave it off,â he says, giving you an apologetic look.
You pout sadly. âI canât believe Iâm losing your beautiful curls because of my lack of self-control.â
He tilts your chin up to look at him. âHey, no blaming yourself. Iâm the idiot who made the bet in the first place.â
Lando retrieves his electric razor while you perch on the bathroom counterâs edge, watching mournfully. Taking a deep breath, he turns it on and brings it to his head.
You gasp as the first patch of hair falls away. âNo, wait!â You cry, grabbing his wrist to stop him.
He raises his eyebrows. âWhatâs wrong?â
Your lower lip quivers. âI canât watch this. Itâs too traumatic!â
Lando laughs and wraps you in a hug. âOh darling, itâs just hair. Itâll grow back.â
You cling to him dramatically. âBut I love your hair so much!â Running your hands through his soft curls one last time, you sigh. âAt least let me help, so I can savor every last strand.â
He smiles and hands you the razor. With a heavy heart, you get to work shaving off his glorious locks. You go slowly, offering up little eulogies along the way.
âGoodbye right sideburn, you always looked so sharp.â
âFarewell beautiful crown curls, so bouncy and free!â
Lando tries not to laugh at your antics. âItâs not dying, love, itâs just hair.â
âShush, let me mourn in peace,â you sniffle.
As the last section of hair falls away, you set down the razor with a forlorn sigh. Lando runs his hand over his newly bare head and checks himself in the mirror.
âWell, what do you think?â He asks.
You bite your lip, holding back a groan. He looks so ... bald.
Lando frowns at your expression. âThat bad, huh?â
âNo, no!â You assure him. âJust different. Iâll get used to it.â You manage a weak smile.
He grins and pulls you close. âDonât worry, Iâm still the same Lando underneath.â To demonstrate, he begins trailing kisses down your neck.
You shudder involuntarily. âBut ... what will I hold onto now when youâre going down on me?â You ask with distress.
Lando barks out a laugh. âIâm sure weâll figure something out,â he promises, nipping at your earlobe.
Despite your mood, you canât help but melt under his touch. You supposed you could get used to your bald Lando, though you already miss tugging on those luscious curls.
Later that night, Lando makes good on his promise to prove he can still drive you wild, hair or no hair. And as you lay tangled up afterward, blissfully sated, you have to admit â he still has some serious skills.
Running your hand over his stubbly head, you grin mischievously. âWell done, Mr. Worldwide.â
He gives you a confused look. âWhat?â
âYou know, like Pitbull!â You laugh. âThe bald head reminds me of him. Iâll have to come up with more bald nicknames now.â
Lando groans playfully. âWhat have I gotten myself into?â But heâs smiling as he pulls you in for another deep kiss.
***
Itâs the morning of the Las Vegas Grand Prix and youâre with Lando in the paddock for his pre-race interviews. Heâs got a cap pulled down over his head but itâs not enough to stop the questions.
âLando, youâre looking a bit different today,â the reporter remarks with a wry smile. âWhatâs with the new hairstyle?â
Lando tugs the cap lower, laughing awkwardly. âOh you know, just felt like a change.â
âA pretty drastic change though, no? Donât think weâve ever seen you with a shaved head before.â The reporter presses further.
âAh, well ...â Lando trails off, glancing at you sheepishly. You give him an encouraging nod, feeling your cheeks heat up.
âLetâs just say I lost a bet and leave it at that,â Lando finally mutters.
The reporter looks like he wants to inquire further but Lando steers the conversation to the race ahead. You let out a relieved breath, glad the subject seems to have been dropped.
But after the interview, a boisterous voice rings out behind you. âOi, Lando! Heard you lost No Nut November!â
You and Lando whirl around to see Daniel Ricciardo sauntering over, his eyes glinting with mirth.
Lando groans. âWho told you that?â
âA little birdie named Max Verstappen who heard from Alex who heard from George,â Daniel chuckles. âSo come on, give us the details! Was it the work of this lovely lady here?â He winks at you exaggeratedly.
You know your face must be scarlet now. Lando just stammers helplessly, which makes Daniel laugh harder.
âNo need to be shy! Happens to all of us.â He leans in conspiratorially. âThough gotta say mate, Iâm impressed you even made it close to halfway. If I had a girl like that waiting at home? Wouldnât last a week!â
âDaniel!â Lando blurts out but heâs fighting back laughter now too. You bury your face in Landoâs shoulder, torn between embarrassment and amusement.
âIn fact ...â Daniel taps his chin thoughtfully. âReckon you deserve a prize for making it through 14 days. Most blokes wouldnât make it past five! Here ...â
He reaches up and plops his AlphaTauri cap onto Landoâs head. âA trophy for your noble efforts!â
Lando swats him away, snickering. âPiss off, mate.â
âJust spreading the love!â Daniel calls over his shoulder as he saunters off. âAnd remember â November is for nutting, not for nothing!â
Lando shakes his head, still chuckling. âUnbelievable. Remind me why Iâm friends with him again?â
You finally lift your flushed face from his shoulder. âBecause heâs ridiculous in the best way and makes everything fun?â You offer with a giggle.
âToo right, love.â Lando smiles and pulls you into a quick kiss. âNow wish me luck today, yeah? Iâm off to claim my real trophy!â
You smoothe down his new AlphaTauri cap and kiss him again for extra luck. Even through your lingering embarrassment, Danielâs antics have lifted the mood. And Lando does look pretty darn cute in that cap. Time to go get that podium!
***
By some miracle, Lando takes the chequered flag in Vegas, earning his first ever Formula 1 race win.
The team is ecstatic, mobbing him in the pits and spraying champagne everywhere. Youâre jumping up and down, screaming yourself hoarse.
As he pulls into parc fermĂŠ, Lando yanks off his helmet and balaclava, his shiny bald head gleaming with sweat. Fisting the air triumphantly, he looks like the happiest man alive.
The podium ceremony and interviews pass in a blur of joyful chaos. Lando canât stop beaming, gazing at the trophy in his hands like he canât believe itâs real.
Finally you get him alone in his driverâs room, immediately jumping into his arms and kissing him fiercely. âYou did it!â You shout gleefully.
Lando laughs, spinning you around. âI actually did it! This is the best day ever!â
You cup his face in your hands. âIâm so proud of you.â Kissing him again, you murmur, âNow itâs time for us to celebrate properly.â
A grin spreads across Landoâs face. âOh yeah? What did you have in mind?â
In response, you lead him toward the couch, peeling off his race suit and fireproofs along the way. You push him down on the leather, straddling his waist and capturing his lips hungrily.
Lando responds eagerly, his hands roaming your body. As you move together, his touches feel extra electrifying in the wake of his triumph.
Afterward, you lay wrapped in each otherâs arms, basking in the afterglow. Lando presses soft kisses to your hair. âYou were right, this is the perfect way to celebrate.â
You laugh, snuggling closer. âMmhmm, Iâm full of good ideas.â
He runs a hand over his head contemplatively. âYou know, I think this new aerodynamic look might actually be my good luck charm. Maybe I should keep it?â
You bolt upright, glaring down at him in horror. âDonât you dare! This is a temporary tragedy we must endure but the curls will return.â
Lando chuckles at your reaction. âRelax, love. Iâm only joking.â He tugs you back down, nuzzling your neck. âTrust me, I miss my hair as much as you do. The second November ends, the curls are coming back.â
âGood,â you huff. âBald is a very sexy look on some people but on you itâs just ... wrong.â You place a hand on his cheek. âI miss running my fingers through those soft locks. Your hair has always been one of my favorite things about you.â
Lando smiles up at you tenderly. âDonât worry, I promise youâll have your handsy little mitts full of my curls again before you know it.â
âI better,â you threaten playfully. âAnd youâll look as dashing as ever.â
You kiss him again, conveying all the pride and affection overflowing from your heart. No matter what hairstyle heâs rocking, Lando is your champion. Though you canât wait to see those luscious honey-brown curls again.
#f1 imagine#f1#f1 fic#f1 fanfic#f1 fanfiction#f1 x reader#f1 x you#lando norris#ln4#lando norris imagine#lando norris x reader#lando norris x you#lando norris fic#lando norris fluff#lando norris fanfic#lando norris blurb#f1 fluff#f1 blurb#f1 one shot#f1 x y/n#f1 drabble#f1 fandom#f1blr#f1 x female reader#lando norris x female reader#lando norris x y/n#mclaren#lando norris one shot#lando norris drabble
3K notes
¡
View notes
Text
You Belong With Me | pilot!h |
Prompt: YN and Harry are enemies until theyâre not. YN doesnât need another relationship but neither does Harry. It doesnât go smoothly.
Word Count: 19k+
Warnings: discussion of miscarriage
author's note:
I upload a piece of writing every 1-3 days.
I recently started a second tier called The OG Tier where 2-3 one shots (1-4kish) are posted a week.
There are currently 400 + pieces available to read
Tier I - $3 USD where you get access to main stories, everything except the mini one shots.
Tier II - $5 USD where you get access to every piece of writing!
you can check it out here!
there is more pilot!h on patreon
click here for a chance at a free month of my writing.
â-â
It isnât love.
At least not a first.
YN cannot tell you the moment she fell in love with him.
However, she can tell you the moment that she knew.
-
YN had never had a casual hookup, sheâd always been in committed relationships, and had pretty vanilla sex that almost always took place in a bedroom without much excitement.
For a long while, she never thought anything of it and deduced that maybe she just was not one of the people who had a wild adventurous sex life or was bold - it was just fine with her boyfriend in the past, it was never anything to write home about.
She definetly never thought that she would find out that she did in fact have a wild side at work of all places.
YN reveled in not rocking the boat, sheâd never do anything unprofessional at work, and she was always one of the best employees - some whispered that she was a kissass or a try hard, YN just wanted to do a good job and hope that most people liked her.
YN had just gotten out of her longest relationship so far - sheâd been with Noah since her first year of college and had broken it off after nearly six years of being together just about five months into her new job.
It wasnât working out any longer, if they were honest, they hadnât been working out for quite sometime.
YN doesnât know exactly when she had fallen out of love with Noah but she had.
It was a rocky breakup.
They wanted different things.
YN wants a ring.
Noah didnât want to get married.
Even though it wasnât the worst breakup ever, YN really was struggling with all the stress it had put on her because her whole life had changed now that she was a flight attendant.
She had to let Noah keep their two dogs which really felt like she gave away custody because he could be home every night to take care of them while YN was never home for more than a few nights at a time.
Noah had owned the house they lived in which meant YN moved into an apartment that wasnât that bad but it really wasnât anything special, it didnât really matter because she wasnât home often enough and packed boxes lay untouched for a long time.
YN decided that being single was best right now, it would be near impossible to find a relationship that would work with her hectic hours and she wasnât going on a dating app to have mediocre sex.
It only takes one person to flip her whole life around.
And that is a fucking understatement.
-
It officially marked her seventh month at the company and her second of being single - both were going somewhat well in her eyes.
Her parents wanted her to find someone, wasting no time in pestering her because they wanted her to have a wedding, to give them grandchildren.
Honestly, YNâs has not been looking.
At first, the breakup with Noah went fine, pleasant even but just a few weeks ago, it had turned completely sour after Noah had told her she wasnât able to visit their two dogs anymore.
When YN was home, sheâd swing by at least once a week to spend some time with her two fur babies whether in his backyard or taking them to the local park for a hike.
However, heâs found a new girlfriend and has stated that itâs no longer a good idea for her to come see the dogs but also said sheâs not allowed to take them either which means she has completely lost them.
Noah: Itâs nothing personal. I just donât want my new girlfriend getting the wrong idea, you know? Sorta a buzzkill to have my ex and me sharing dogs like theyâre kids or something. I hope you understand, maybe I can send pics
âYN, hello?â Her friend Elaina waves her hand in front of her cellphone screen to break her gaze from Noahâs text message.
âSorry,â YN mumbles as she locks her phone and puts it on airplane mode.
They were waiting in the employee area for their flight to be ready, a little lounge that was a bit too humid and the coffee was always out.
âI was saying that today is Pilot Stylesâ first day with Paradise Airlines after moving from Coastal,â Elaina explains to YN and the few other women that were huddled on the worn couches.
YNâs brow furrows at that, âAm I supposed to know who that is?â
She had heard rumors that a new pilot would be joining their team, be their captain as Paradise Airlines were unlike other companies - they tended to keep crews together on the same flights to build a good coworking relationship.
All the girls look at her like she had a second head, Justine speaking up first, âHow do you not know who he is?â
YN doesnât quite know how to answer that, shrugging her shoulders, âI donât remember anyone ever saying anything about that captain to me. Why is it a big deal that he is changing to our airline?â
Perry jumps in, excited that she gets to spill some gossip, âWell, weâre surprised you donât know him because of the amount of shit that the stewardessâ bitch about him. Itâs a big deal that heâs coming to our airline because every attendant I know hates him.â
YN wasnât expecting that for the reason that he was so well known.
âI mean most pilots are a bit grouchy,â YN responds as she sips her coffee that has enough espresso to get her through the next ten hours, âThey all seem a little miserable if Iâm honest.â
Elaina laughs at that, leaning forward, âHeâs not just a bit grouchy. Heâs a straight up asshole. Heâs probably the most unfriendly, unwelcoming person that Iâve ever met and Iâve heard from others that itâs the same. He treats everybody like theyâre less than and is demanding, like everybody needs to bow down for him.â
âYouâve worked with him before?â YN asks Elaina, it sounds like she was speaking from personal experience and there was still annoyance in her tone as she recounts how she knows the captain.
âUnfortunately, I worked at Coastal Airlines for a few years before I moved here. Styles is probably around forty years old so heâs been here quite a while now. I didnât have many experiences with him but I swear he made at least one attendant cry each flight.â
âDid he make you cry?â YN responds because that seemed to be what Elaina was insinuating as her friend picked at the foam of her cheap coffee cup.
âOnce,â Elaina nods with a pursed smile, âI accidentally turned off the seatbelt sign right before major turbulence which was totally on me but Harry lost his shit on me, he wrote me a formal warning, told me that if i canât do something as simple as button control that I should be working somewhere âmore my speedâ, and when I started crying - he fucking laughed at me for and told me I was being childish.â
âMaybe he was just having a bad day?â YN tries to justify because why would someone be so cruel for no reason, it didnât make sense unless he was perpetually miserable.
Justine finally jumps into the conversation, âHe has a bad day everyday. He usually sits down at the hotel bars for an hour or so after check-in. Iâve watched stewardessâ try to hit on him, get him to take them back to his room because even though heâs a dickhead, heâs fucking hot. A lot of the time, he just turns them down but sometimes heâll toy with them. Heâll flirt, buy them a drink, and then laugh at them because they thought they had a chance with him.â
Itâs official, YN already hates this Captain Styles, he sounds like a chauvinist pig and she hopes that she can just manage to keep a safe distance from him.
YN misses the social cues of the situation, she misses the way the other girls tense up, she misses the warning glances that theyâre trying to silently give her, she misses the way their eyes widen at the doorway.
YNâs back was turned toward the door so she couldnât see who walked in, didnât even hear anyone, and shakes her head with a soft chuckle, âI donât care how good looking Captain Styles is, he can fuck off if he thinks he can be an asshole to me. Iâm not in the mood.â
And she was expecting some type of response from her fellow coworkers but instead they are absolute dead silence, sitting stock still, and looking down at their laps.
âIs that right?â A deep voice asks from behind her, it nearly sent chills down her spine at the tone, cool and collected but the sharp, authoritative edge was not going unnoticed by her.
YN squeezes her eyes shut for a long moment, already having a sinking feeling that it was none other than the captain, her new boss, behind her and had just heard her brave declaration.
She stands up, straightening out the pleats of her freshly ironed dress, and turns towards him.
YN feels her breathing stutter when she finally comes face to face with the man who no one has had anything good to say about and she feels a weird flip in her stomach.
They said he was hot.
But that really didnât do any justice to the man standing in front of her.
He was hot, sure but he was devastatingly, intimidatingly handsome.
Sheâd never been so intimidated by someone based on their appearance alone, he was so beautiful that it was startling as he stared her down with a bored expression.
He was tall, lean but not in a scrawny way, it was obvious that he had lithe muscle on his body that was hidden away under his uniform, and said uniform fit him like an absolute glove.
Captain Styles had cropped brown curls with individual gray hairs scattered within, mostly near his temples which was the one of the only signs of his age, his eyes were a piercing green surrounding by dark lashes, and his lips were puffy, pouty, and currently in a frown.
YN realizes that heâs expecting a response and in that moment, despite his good looks, she decides that sheâs not going to let herself be treated like shit because she has had enough of that from other men in her life lately.
She knows itâs only appropriate to apologize but sheâs not going to grovel for his forgiveness, he could hate her because she already disliked him, and so she swallows her pride for the moment.
âI apologize, Captain Styles,â YN says clearly, not letting once ounce of anxiety slip into her tone, âThat was inappropriate and uncalled for. It wonât happen again. I look forward to working with you.â
He narrows his eyes at her, studying her face and not letting the scowl leave his, its like heâs trying to look at her soul with how intent his stare is, and then heâs replying, âUnfortunately, I cannot say the same. It doesnât seem like such a pleasure to work with you. However, I am hopeful youâre not as unpersonable with customers as you are with your superiors.â
YNâs has to stop herself from letting her mouth drop open at the harshness of his words, a ball of red hot fury beginning to build in her as she drops the faux smile from her face.
âI donât think you have much room to talk about being unpersonable, Captain Styles,â YN tells him, making sure the words sound soft and just casual conversation even though itâs anything but - she can feel the eyes of her coworkers bulging at the confrontation.
Harry smiles brightly, his bright white teeth flashing almost dangerously at her words, âEven though itâs adorable, the attitude wonât last long. Not if you want to keep your job.â
YN doesnât let that worry her, she could always find a job with another airline, thereâs always a need and for some reason, she decides that she wants to pick a fight with this man when sheâs never done something like this before.
âIâm good at my job and Iâm friendly,â YN shrugs like sheâs unbothered, she catches Harryâs fist clench tightly at his side in annoyance but itâs the only sign of it in his body, âI think you may be able to take some lessons from me because the latter seems pretty difficult for you, Captain.â
Harryâs eyes are dark, laser focused on her and no one else in the room, and her words donât change his facial expression, he simply states to the room at large, âChange of plans for the flight to Heathrow,â He takes a minute to look at her name badge, âI would like Perry and YN to switch positions on todayâs flight. The plane is boarding in fifteen minutes, please be prepared to board and prepare for takeoff.â
With that, heâs turning on his heel and striding right back out the door.
âAre you fucking crazy?â Elaina hisses as she smacks YNâs arm, âWhat the hell were you thinking?â
YN doesnât really know what got into her, that man just brought something out in her that made her want to fight, to be a little be feisty, and get under his skin when no one else could.
âI wasnât really,â YN admits with a nervous laugh, flopping back down on the sofa, âHeâs just so arrogant, cocky. Men like that get on my nerves and Iâm not going to let him treat me however he wants.â
âI have to say Iâm relieved Iâm no longer on cockpit duty but Iâm sorry for you, itâs going to be a long flight,â Perry sighs as she sits up to throw her empty drink away.
Fuck.
âOf course,â YN shakes her head in annoyance, âOf course, heâs going to make me wait on him hand and foot now.â
âDepends, sometimes he really keeps to himself. Especially on the long flights but when heâs on a rampage, heâll make the whole flight awful. Thanks for that,â Justine snorts but doesnât actually seem that mad, like she knows YN is going to get the brunt of it.
âLucky me,â YN responds sarcastically, it was about time they headed out to board.
Paradise had the nicest planes in the game, newest and most expensive, an average seat on board cost no less than a thousand dollars, and everyone had pods instead of normal seating.
It was for long flights, international which YN didnât mind - she liked getting out of the country, sometimes she got to experience the cities for a day or so, not always.
The cockpit attendant was exactly what it sounded like, they were responsible for communicating with the pilots and then passing that message onto either the passengers or other employees.
They would ask the stewardess to check on things, give them drinks or prepare their food, and give them any updates that may be necessary for them to know.
Most flight attendants want the cockpit because it tended to be the easiest spot, didnât have to deal with the unruly passengers much, didnât have to be at their beck and call, and most pilots were pretty low maintances and kept communication to a minimum.
However, everyone seemed to want to face the customers for a ten hour flight than even have to talk to their pilot which wasnât what YN had considered - it just shows how awful he is and she just subjected herself to it.
-
Takeoff is smooth, after a few minutes, Captain Stylesâ voice filters through the intercoms where he discusses the flight, the weather, the time, and cursing altitude before wishing them a good trip.
He doesnât bother YN until three hours in, pressing the button that signals to her that she is needed in the pit which she punches in the code and sticks her head in where Harry and his co-pilot are.
âYes, Captain Styles?â YN uses her most professional tone because she truly wasnât trying to get fired.
âClub soda with lemon,â Is all he responds without looking back, no please or courtesy - it was demand because he could.
âYes sir,â YN has to make sure it doesnât come out as sharply as she wants it, heâs already creating an itch under her skin, and its making her want to tell him off again.
She takes her time preparing the drink, no rush to be back which sheâs hoping annoys him, and when she steps back into the cockpit, attempting to hand him the beverage - he doesnât reach for it.
âIâve changed my mind. Iâd actually prefer a raspberry la croiax,â He again doesnât make any effort to look at her and she swears she can see the slightest smirk at the corner of his lips.
âIâll take the club soda,â The other man shrugs, taking it off of her hands so that it doesnât go to waste, oblivious to the obvious tension in the small space.
YN knows that heâs doing it just to fuck with her, its unprofessional and immature but that shouldnât surprise her with how much people have been warning her about him, right?
She again drags her feet and inhales deeply before reentering, hands out with the drink, and this time Harry reaches for it - she tries not to startle when their fingers brush momentarily, one of his rings bumping her.
âMiss. YN, I know I switched you position last moment,â Harry hums like heâs thoughtful, it actually makes her more irritated than when heâs blunt and cold, it like heâs playing a game right now, âBut I think cockpit attendant is most likely the easiest job on this plane. If you cannot even get beverages in a timely manner than maybe you need some additional training or an even easier job.â
YN is absolutely staring daggers into the back of his head, she knows that this is usually when the other women cry or back away with their tail between their legs but YN wasnât going to do either of those things.
She was going to kill him with kindness.
âAbolstuely, Captain Styles. I apologize for any inconvenience, I know you have such a hard job and Iâm making it difficult. Iâll try better in then future, thank you for your feedback,â The fake enthusiasm is dripping into her voice and itâs obvious how much acting is put in to her demeanor.
She preens a bit when she realizes that it catches him at least a little of guard, his smirk faltering for a moment before his eyes narrow again and his nostrils are flaring, âGet out my pit.â
And YN has to contain her giggle, overjoyed that sheâd managed to irk him, and it seems to do the trick as he doesnât request anymore beverages for the rest of the flight and doesnât interact with her nearly at all.
-
YN can at least give it to Captain Styles that it was a smooth flight, as they were landing and finally able to exit the aircraft - all the girls looked at her with wide eyes, most likely expecting it to look like she had cried recently but she hadnât.
It was a tradition to dine together when they landed in a new country since Paradise made them a team and always paired them together, they were also at the same hotel which worked out for them to hang out.
Elaina, YN, Perry, and Justine were all sat in the hotel restaurant gossiping about different attendants and recounting atrocious customers when out of the corner of her eye, she sees Harry walk into.
He had changed from his uniform into a pair of loose black slacks and fitted black t-shirt as he headed straight toward the bar, he didnât glance around to see his surroundings and slid onto a stool.
âHe has no right to be that attractive when heâs that much of an asshole,â Justine grumbles, crossing her arms dramatically, âAlmost every pilot sleeps around. Why is he the only one who doesnât?â
âYou donât think heâs ever slept with one?â YN asks curiously because she doesnât put it above Harry to do one night stands and then act like the girl didnât even exist the next day.
âI think he was married at some point,â Perry shrugs, âAnd from what I know he didnât cheat on his wife like most pilotâs do. I donât know what happened but Brandy said she heard Harry tell one of his copilots that he was single a year back or something. So they must have gotten a divorce.â
That surprised YN, she knew that many people who worked for airlines and travel constantly tended to do quite a bit of sleeping around because they werenât home often with their significant others.
There was a lot of cheating in this line of work.
So once again, it did throw YN through a loop that he wasnât known as one of the serial cheaters like most pilots are - thatâs not saying he didnât cheat on his wife, he could have done it much more secretly but itâs hard to keep it that much under wraps.
âIâd divorce him too. I canât imagine he treated his wife too well,â Justine adds in with a sip of her margarita and a chuckle, âDespite how handsome and charming he can be, he seems like a bit of a loner.â
YN was not going to feel bad for him.
The rest of the dinner goes well, Harry doesnât turn to look at them once but he has to know theyâre there - Perry and Justine got a bit rowdy towards the end of the night and their giggles were echoing through the room.
When they file out, YN glances at Harry which she doesnât know why, and is startled to see that heâs staring at her through the mirror opposite the bar, only for a moment before he purposefully looks away.
-
âFucking shit,â YN curses loudly in the empty bathroom, sheâd only been back from dinner for not more than fifteen minutes and was about to hop in the shower when dropped her hairdryer right on the top of her foot as she unpacked her toiltery bag.
It was already showing signs of discoloration and there was a nice sized abrasion across the top - it was absolutely throbbing and the shower was forgotten.
She had showered before the flight and wasnât too dirty which meant she was just going to wait until the morning.
Instead she slips into her pajamas which consisted of a plain black tank top and a pair of cotton shorts that had sushi rolls all over them - a gift from Elaina after a girls night of bad sushi which resulted in food poisoning in Japan.
YN had a bad habit of walking around barefoot, it didnât matter whether it was her house, the woods, the hotel hallways - sheâd grown up in the country and it was just a habit to not wear shoes when she didnât have too.
She grabs the ice bucket from the countertop to go fill it with ice, she could wrap some up in a towel and ice her foot - hopefully to prevent it from swelling too much.
They had a flight back to the states tomorrow and it was another ten hour trip, they were required to wear a specific kitten-heel shoe and she knew a swollen foot would feel awful in it.
It was nearly eleven at night, she didnât think there would be many people patrolling the hallway, and wandered out of her room down the corridor - following the signs that guided her to the ic machine.
She passes the elevators and continues down the row of room when she hears it beep and the heavy doors open, she doesnât bother looking back because sheâs sure itâs just someone going to their room.
Of course thatâs not the fucking case though.
âItâs pretty disgusting to be walking around barefoot in a hotel,â A voice from behind her states with clear disdain in his low tone, âThen you get into a clean bed with filthy feet?â
YN internally groans because of course itâs him.
âMind your own business, Captain Styles. Weâre off the clock,â YN retorts back with more bite than sheâs had all day as she continues to walk albeit at a slower than usual pace.
âWhy are you limping? You werenât limping earlier at the resturaunt,â Harry asks pointedly, his voice hasnât softened and itâs like he is literally demanding the answers out of her, not asking.
Huh.
He was paying attention to her earlier.
Interesting.
âI dropped my hairdryer on my foot. Iâm going to get ice for it,â YN canât help the low but audible gasp that leaves her mouth when she steps down and a sharp pain shoots up through her already tender foot but then she feels the ice bucket being ripped out of her hand, âHey! What the hell-â
âQuiet the fuck down, will you?â Harry hissed as he steps in front of her, cutting off her path, there was still quite a long way to go until the ice dispenser and sheâd like to get this over with so she can rest her foot, âGo back to your room. Iâll bring the ice to you. What room number are you?â
He doesnât sound like heâs doing it because he feels bad for her, his tone is making it seem like sheâs being annoying and an inconvenience and if he gets her the ice then she wonât be such a bother to him - his facial expression isnât saying anything different than that either.
âI can get my own ice,â YN tries to reach for the handle but he jerks it away childishly.
âI didnât ask you whether you could or not. With how long it took you to bring me a fucking drink by the time you hobble back to your hotel room, the sun will be rising. Donât make me ask again, what room number are you?â Harry grits out because heâs definitely annoyed but YN doesnât know whether he has another state of being besides that.
âThree twenty seven,â YN mumbles defeatedly, she wasnât going to stand in the hallway and argue any longer about a stupid bucket of ice, it pains her but she manages to say, âThank you.â
Harry stares at her for a moment longer, frown etched onto his face, and he looks like heâs about to say something nice but then his eyebrows furrow once again and says, âBe more careful. I donât want to have to deal with a new stewardess because you canât walk and put some fucking shoes on.â
Then heâs sauntering off without waiting for her response and she canât help but just look at his broad back for a moment in disbelief at what an asshole he is but there is at least some type of kindness underneathâŚ.maybe sheâs imagining things because sheâs tired and in pain.
Thereâs a knock on her door a few minutes later, she thought heâd be back with the ice sooner and she started to believe that he was purposely taking long because of what she did with his drinks on the flight earlier.
So when she swings open the door, she already has a major attitude as she snatches the bucket of ice out of his hand and scowls at him, âI know I took a long time with your drinks earlier but Iâm actually in pain, its really rude of you to -â
Harry extends his hand, showing that he has a bottle of aspirin in it, âI went down to the little shop in the lobby and got this for you, didnât know if you traveled with it but should help the swelling and pain for tomorrowâs flight.â
And YN actually feels bad because that was nice of him to do and so she sheepishly takes it, âIâm sorry I know we got off on the wrong foot. I just thoug-â
âIâm not going to be your fucking friend, save the apology or whatever youâre about to say. I do not care,â Harry shakes his head as his hands go back to his sides, âIâm looking out for my crew, nothing more.â
YN thinks sheâs starting to see past his tough guy exterior even if sheâs only known him for a few hours at this point.
âYou bring every stewardess aspirin?â YN shoots back with a raised eyebrow.
Harry grits his teeth, jaw clenching, âI havenât met one as clumsy or unbearable as you before.â
âItâs an honor to be the most unbearable one youâve met in all your years of being a pilot,â YN flutters her eyelashes at him but thereâs so much tension between them that she can almost taste it, sheâd never felt this with someone before, âI look forward to living up to my title.â
It surprises her when Harry steps forward, their chests nearly touching, and he is looking down at her, âIâm not someone you want to fuck with, do you understand me? Listen to your little friends when they tell you about me, itâs all true.â
âIâm not scared of you,â YN shakes her head defiantly, crossing arms and bumping his chest just barely in the process but he doesnât move back yet.
âI never said anything about being scared of me,â Harry responds almost conversationally, if he leaned forward just a bit more their lips would be connecting andâŚ.
And what the fuck.
No, YN, No.
âI donât understand why youâre such a miserable asshole,â YN responds tightly, trying to reign in her thoughts, âBut youâre going to have a hell of a time trying to make me fucking bow to you.â
Harry doesnât like that, not one bit because he nearly snarls, and bites out, âYouâre not going to last long on my crew. Iâll make fucking sure of that. I won't fire you but by the time Iâm done with you, youâll be begging to quit.â
YN finally snaps at that, this arguement clearly going no where, and she would have thrown the aspirin back at him but she actually did need it so as she reaches for the door handle to close it, she makes sure to let him know, âFuck you.â
Harry's face transforms into a sickeningly sweet smile, dimples popping in his cheeks as he steps out of the room and into the hallway, âItâs been a lovely first day working with you, Miss YN. If you want to be intimidating, you might want to try it when youâre not wearing pajama shorts with sushi rolls on them.â
And with that, heâs disappearing down the hall.
-
As expected, the next day YNâs foot was swollen which made getting her feet into the kitten heels exceptionally hard this morning, her foot was already pulsating in pain by the time they got to the airport.
When theyâre in the staff room, checking any updates for the flight, thereâs a collective sigh of relief when positions are posted before they all look over at YN, she doesnât even have to look to know what theyâre thinking.
âYou really pissed him off,â Elaina states as she frowns at her friend, âI donât know if Iâve ever seen Styles put the same attendant on cockpit for two flights in a row.â
YN was relieved in all honesty because she was going to be able to sit more than the others and sheâd rather not be on her feet for hours on end with her bruising in the just the very beginning of the healing phase.
âItâs because Iâm not going to take his bullshit,â YN responds with another sip of her strong coffee, âI can see why he makes people cry, heâs a jerk but I'm not going to let him win with me. He gets on my last nerve so Iâm going to make sure to get on his.â
âAnd if he fires you from his crew?â Perry asks and itâs clear that sheâs trying to tell YN to cool it with the attitude because they really donât want to see their friends lose her job.
YN almost spills about the conversation her and Harry had last night, how he doesnât want anybody new on his flights which makes her somewhat confident that he won't get rid of her easily but she wasn't going to tell her friends about that interaction.
Instead she tries to come off as nonchalant as possible when she shrugs her shoulders, âSo be it. Iâm not going to kiss his ass for this job.â
Elaina and Justine are giving her the same disapproving looks like they donât want to see the Rama unfold which will most likely end in YN getting the boot as it was much easier to replace a flight attendant than a pilot.
-
It must be tradition for Harry to come into the staff room before the flights to let them know that boarding is happening soon and if thereâs anything that they need to be aware of.
When he walks in today, he notices how the others straighten up and sit more proper than they were before, giving the captain their full attention and YN canât help but roll her eyes.
She knows it's outwardly rude but she doesnât put her phone away when he begins to speak about the potential weather hazards and turbulence that may occur on the upcoming flight.
YN wants to smile because she can feel the daggers that Harry is boring into her as he speaks and she blatantly lets him know how uninterested she is in what he has to say.
After he is done speaking, he asks if thereâs any questions or anything that the staff needs and they all respond pretty much in unison saying â no Captainâ everyone except YN.
YN has never, not once been so insubordinate at work, she fucking thrived on being a model employee and for the life of her, she could not explain the brattiness that Harry brought out in her.
She was having fun making him angry and sheâs never been that type of person, it was like she was also enjoying his attention even though it was negative but YN wouldnât admit that.
It seems pretty easy to rile him up, get him on-edge, his bullshit tolerance was seemingly low which made it easy for YN to succeed.
âMiss YN, Iâd like to see you privately. Now,â Harry orders with no budge, he hasnât raised his voice but the words are distinct and pronounced.
âSheâs just having a bad day,â Elaina, always the good friend, tries to justify because sheâs definitely afraid that YN is about to get fired, âShe doesnât usu-â
âDid I ask you?â Harry snaps at the women, his eyes fiery now with confrontation, âDid I ask for your opinion? I think I can do my job just fine without your input, stewardess.â
He managed to make the job title seem less than or demeaning in the way it came out but Elainaâs eyes go wide in surprise and she instantly quiets back down.
âIf you find it necessary to try to tell me how to manage my crew, you can start looking for another airline to work for,â Harry threatens but his gaze is already back on YN, her heart absolutely sinks when she hears Elaina start to sniffle to hold back tears.
That was the normal effect that he had on others, a few really harsh and threatening words would make them cry because they were scared of him and his wrath.
YN pats Elainaâs thigh, in a silent âthank youâ for trying to stick up for her but she pushes herself off the couch, quickly hiding the grimace when her foot reminds her itâs injured and grabs the handle of her heavy luggage.
âFifteen minutes,â Harry tells the rest of them before heâs going back out the door but this time with YN in tow, again slower than usual as sheâs trying to manage this bruised foot in heels.
Harry doesnât take her far, just down the hall to an empty conference room and shuts the door - she wants to smile with how angry he seems to be but she also hates how handsome he was when he was like this.
His jaw was clenched but it showed off how defined and cut it was, his puffy lips were pouty and a bit swollen from biting them, and he made his shoulders as broad as possible like he was trying to puff up in defense.
âI think itâs a fucking record,â Harry almost growls as he crosses his arms, putting his hat on the table, âI donât think Iâve ever despised a stewardess as quickly as you. How have you gotten anywhere in life with that spoiled attitude?â
âI could ask the same,â YN raises her eyebrow because he doesnât have room to talk on attitude, âIâm not normally like this. You just bring out the absolute worst in me.â
âGood to know I have such an effect on you,â Harry smiles smugly, his teeth gleaming and those same dimples popping, âThat I can get you so worked up.â
It definitely had a double meaning laced in those words.
âDonât flatter yourself,â YN laughs like heâs told the funniest joke, âYouâre not as great as you think you are. Iâm not impressed.â
And bingo.
That must strike a nerve with him.
YN can already tell nobody ever tells him that.
His teasing smile drops into something stormier, âCut the bullshit now. When Iâm talking, you listen and pay attention, youâre not some silly little teenager who canât take a moment away from her phone. I know what youâre doing. Iâm not going to be disrespected so blatantly in front of my crew.â
YNâs insides sorta twist at that because when he lays it out like that, it was really fucking rude of her and just because theyâre having issues doesnât give her the right to be so outwardly disrespectful in front of the crew.
She actually means it when she says, âIâm sorry and it wonât happen again.â
Harryâs eyebrows raise like heâs surprised that she sincerely apologized but it relaxes him a bit after the apology, shoulders dropping just the slightest, and YNâs mind starts to drift on what his broad shoulders look like underneath the perfectly pressed uniformâŚ
No.
Absolutely fucking not.
But god, even if YN couldnât stand his personality, she really couldnât deny how fucking attracted she was to him, it would be hard not to with how beautiful he is.
It helps to know that he doesnât sleep with people he works with which means that she could fully keep this a fantasy.
âSee you can be an obedient little puppy,â Harry lets the condescending tone lace through his words.
YN has to clench her fists by her side to avoid smacking the ever living shit out of him.
âGo fuck yourself,â YN hisses because heâs now managed to completely piss her off, âI take back my god damn apology. You absolute douchebag.â
Harry smiles again, eyes twinkling under the fluorescent lights because he got the reaction he wanted out of her, and watches in amusement when YN grabs her luggage handle and though she canât storm out of the room as sheâd like with her foot, she exits without another word.
When sheâs a bit down the hall, she stops, leaning against the wall as removes her shoe, massaging at the tender skin that was already pulsing from being in the heel.
It felt good to have it off for a moment but of course, Harry decides to come the same way down the hall which makes YN cut her rest short and slip back on her heel without looking at him.
As she starts back down the hallway, almost like yesterday night, the handle of her suitcase is pried from her hand by none other than Harry as he strolls down the hall, âWhat the fuc-â
âKeep your voice down,â Harry chides sharply, taking the duffle off her shoulder and swinging it over hers, âWeâll never make it to board on time with you limping around like this. Câmon, I donât like being late and youâre going to make me.â
YNâs argument dies on her tongue because itâs actually very nice of him to be lugging her suitcase and duffel which they donât say anything else but when they get inside the plane - Harry tucks them away for her too.
Sheâs relieved none of her friends are on board yet because she knew they would have a ton of questions if they saw what just happened.
And YN would not have a fucking clue how to explain it.
-
The next three months go on basically the same since being on the same flight crew with Harry, they would constantly go at it before flights, Harry would drag her into a private room and theyâd argue a bit before heâd take her luggage to the terminal for her.
They never interacted at the hotel restaurant or bar but they happened to bump into each other a lot as YN made it a habit to get ice at night around the same time and they both never mentioned how Harry was magically coming up to his room at that time and would walk to the ice machine and back to her room together.
As time went on, the night walks with Harry, there wasnât always much conversation, occasionally bitching about an unruly passenger or an idiot staff member, quite a bit of jabbing and poking at each other but it didnât seem so filled with hatred anymore.
It wasnât a pleasant relationship at all, they were both pretty awful to each other and YN typically ended every conversation they had with a âfuck youâ or some variation of it but now there were some not so hostile moments mixed in between them.
They werenât friends, not even cordial really but YN knew that she had a closer relationship to Harry than anyone else on the crew and sheâd had kept that hidden from her friends.
She didnât want them to get the wrong impression, she knew they would jump to the conclusion that they were hooking up or that she liked him in that way - it was better to keep it on the down low even if there really wasnât much to report.
It had been a late flight in, everyone had eaten one of the lackluster meals on the plane, and headed up to their hotel room the moment they landed to go to sleep.
YN was on the same boat, not bothering to get the unnecessary ice tonight, and sheâs just stepped into her room when her phone buzzes with a text message from her friend back home.
Micah: What a dick. I didnât even know he was in a new relationship, let alone that serious. [image attachment]
YN opens the conversation to a screenshot from Noahâs instagram, sheâd blocked him after he refused to let her see the dogs anymore, and it was a picture of his most recent post.
He was holding a girl she didnât recognize, her legs wrapped around Noahâs hips and her left hand held up to their face where theyâre kissing, and a prominent diamond sat on her finger.
The caption was something sickeningly sweet about her saying âyesâ and how excited he is for the rest of their lives together.
They hadnât even been broken up for an entire year yet.
One of the main reasons that they broke up in the first place was because after six years, YN was ready to settle down and get married but he said that he just didnât want that right now and he wasnât sure if he ever really wanted to get married.
It turns out that he just really didnât want to marry her.
God, she was over him but the rejection still fucking stung.
She deletes the photo from the conversation so she doesnât have to look at it any longer and she canât go back to hyperfixate on it later but she felt like a bus just hit her suddenly as she sat in her empty hotel room.
YN wipes her eyes roughly, refusing to let herself cry over it, and instead, she does something she typically never does while sheâs traveling for work - she slips on her shoes and heads right down to the hotel bar to get drunk.
The flight the next day wasnât until noon so she didnât have to roll out of bed super early and she just wanted to feel numb right now which alcohol had a great way of doing.
It was a bit busy for a weeknight, quite a few businessmen scattered around the lounge, a few couples, and a few lone people like herself when she sits down on a bar stool and orders Long Island.
YN wasnât a light weight per se but it really didnât take her much to be feeling good and by her third one, she was feeling warm and fuzzy, not as awful as she felt an hour earlier.
She was drunk, not to the point of blacking out or being belligerent but enough that she was ready to curl into bed and have a night long sleep and pray not to have a nasty hangover.
YNâs just ordered her fourth, a bit surprised that the bartender allowed it but she wasnât showing any sign of being smashed, and then someone slid up beside her, close to where their shoulders brushed.
It was stupid but momentarily she wished it was Harry, thought it would be him but she frowns when it's one of the businessmen from the lounge that is grinning at her.
âCan I buy you a drink?â He asks even though he can see that she has a completely full one right in front of her.
âIâm good, thank you,â YN tells him without much kindness in her tone to let him know that sheâs not interested in whatever he wants from her but that doesnât seem to deter her.
âCâmon, just one? Itâd be a crime not to buy a drink for someone so gorgeous,â He lays it on hard, he wasnât sitting and he was too much in her space for her liking.
âI said no,â YN replies firmly, it was obvious in her body language that he was making her uncomfortable but he really didnât seem to care.
âAre you married? Whatâs the big fuckinâ deal? I donât see a ring on your finger, just have a drink-â The man pushes, angrier as he realizes that heâs being rejected, YN ignores the wedding band on his finger.
âIs there an issue here?â A startling loud voice states from behind them and YN slumps in relief when she realizes that it was Harry.
âWho the fuck are you?â The businessman retorts, puffing up his chest and posturing like he was ready for a fight.
âHer husband,â Harry lies easily, heâs not as worked up as the man heâs confronted but he doesn't need to be - his presence and the way he holds himself is ten times more intimidating than the other man.
The businessman looks between the two of them before rolling his eyes, snatching his freshly ordered beer off the counter and going back to the table with his friends.
âThanks for that,â YN tells him as she goes to take a sip of her drink.
Harry doesnât allow her, intercepting the glass and putting it back on the bar, âYouâre drunk. I think youâve had enough to drink. Itâs time for you to get to bed.â
YN frowns at the full drink, she canât help the spoiled whine in the back of her throat, âBut I want it.â
Harry surprisingly lets out a soft laugh, his hand coming to her shoulder and his thumb rubs a circle for a moment before heâs pulling back - realizing what he did but doesnât lose his smile, âI know you do, seem to be really enjoying them but I think itâs time for you to get back to your room.â
âMm, a few more sips,â YN coos which isnât her normal behavior but she was drunk, she couldnât be blamed for being a bit flirty with the prettiest man sheâd ever seen, âSâgood and sugary, make me forget.â
Harryâs brow furrows, âThatâs an awful reason to drink. What are you trying to forget?â
YN shakes her head as she begins to pull out her wallet, grabbing a few bills but she stops when Harry directly hands the bartender enough to cover it.
âYou didnât have to do that,â YN mumbles because she doesnât know why he was being nice to her.
âI know I didnât, come on,â Harry replies, he gently holds her shoulder as she clumsily gets off the bar still and when she stumbles, Harry wraps his arm around her waist but just barely touching her to guide her, âYouâre a sloppy drunk, arenât you?â
YN pouts at that as they leave the bar, âI donât drink a lot. I donât think Iâve gotten drunk in the last year or two.â
âWhy now?â Harry asks as he presses the button up when YN starts to tilt - the hand on her back finally moves to her hip, gripping her with more pressure to keep her standing.
YN snorts unattractively, her eyes were getting bleary and heavy, she was getting tired which happened when she drank liquor.
âLike you care why Iâm sad,â YN scoffs as theyâre stepping into the lift, he leans forward to press the number to their floor.
Harry pauses for a moment, he doesnât tell her he cares but instead repeats more firmly, âTell me whatâs going on. Iâm sick of asking.â
âMy ex just got engaged,â YN whispers and fuck, she feels tears begin to prick at her eyes as she say it out loud.
âHeâs your ex for a reason, why are you upset?â Harry responds but he doesnât seem judgemental but curious.
âI was with him for six years. We broke up two months into this job. He said he didnât want to be tied down, he didnât think he ever wanted to get married, and he didnât want me waiting around for a ring and babies,â YN swallows as she wipes at her cheeks, mascara was definitely starting to rub, âLess than a year later, heâs already proposed to a girl he barely knows. I donât know why I wasnât good enough for him. I was a good partner.â
Harryâs silent as the elevator goes up, his hand doesnât leave her hip even though sheâs not swaying but she appreciates it's ground her and makes everything seem a little less worse.
âIâm sorry,â Harry finally says and he doesnât sound like heâs being condescending - it actually sounds like he means it, âI cannot imagine what that feels like to go through. I canât imagine why he would do that. Youâre smart, intelligent-â
âDonât act like you donât hate me, Harry. Just to make me feel better,â YN butts in because she doesnât need him to butter her up when she knows he doesnât mean those things.
âI donât hate you,â Harryâs voice is deep but quieter than it usually is, âYou get on my nerves nearly every fuckinâ second of the day but that doesnât mean that I donât see how smart, quick-witted, beautiful you are.â
YN bites her lip because she didnât realize that she needed to hear that, itâs been a long while since sheâs got a compliment, and in about the year leading up to ending her relationship with Noah - heâd never say anything nice like this.
âThank you, I-I havenât heard anything nice like that in a while,â YN tells him as she continues to swipe away tears and look down at her feet because she can feel Harryâs eye watching her and sheâs embarrassed sheâs responding this way.
âYou should be hearing those things everyday,â He sighs and squeezes the plush of her hip kindly, guiding her again when the elevator at or door opens, âI know itâs a bit ironic considering our style of communication but I do mean those things.â
YN tells him her room number and they begin walking down the left of the hallway, her mind is fuzzy but feels a little more clear after their conversation, âItâs fine, Iâm just as bad and I started it for the most part. I donât expect to hear those things from you.â
As they wind up at her door, Harry steps back and puts his hands into his pockets, âI should be nicer to you but I hate to admit I enjoy getting under your skin and making you angry. Youâre quite pretty when you're pissed at me.â
And YNâs mind goes to insecurity right away because she knows that Harry doesnât like her even though he said he doesnât hate her, he has no reason to be this nice to her and even though theyâve had moments through the past months of niceness âŚ
She doesnât know what makes her blurt this out and she wishes she could swallow it as soon as it came out of her mouth.
âAre you trying to be all nice to sleep with me or something? Then youâll be a dick again once you get what you want?â YNâs words are just a bit slurred but hold a somewhat curious, somewhat accusing tone as she watches him.
The small smile that had been on his face for their conversation drops and in its place was a frigid scowl and before he even spoke, she knew that she had offended him but the way his shoulders tense up and he takes another step back from her.
âYou know whatâs fucked up? I finally try to put myself out there just the littlest bit for you and all you can think is that I want to fuck you? You think that lowly of me?â Harryâs soft whispers were gone and back was the cold, emotionless bravado that echoed off the empty hallway walls, âThat I was just trying to use you?â
âI-Harry, I didn-no, I didnât,â YN begins to stumble because unlike their usual back and forth arguing that dissipates in meaningless banter, this wasnât that - she had actually upset him and that was never her intention.
âSave it your bullshit apology,â Harry replies to cut her off, shaking his head like heâs disappointed in how idiotic heâs been, âIâm done trying if this is where it fucking gets me. I knew it wasnât fucking worth it.â
And with that, heâs storming away from her without another word and he doesnât look back as she stares after him dumbfounded at what the fuck just happened.
The flight the next day home, Harry puts her back on the back crew which was the further position away from the cockpit who dealt with the consumers in the back of the aircraft.
Her friends congratulate her on getting away from the pit because they didnât know anything about how Harry and hers relationship has developed but all she could feel was anxiety about how much sheâd fucked up.
He doesnât come into the staff room before takeoff and is already in the pit when the stewardessâ board, YN doesnât see him until the crew is heading off the plane.
Harry makes it clear heâs looking for no interaction as he hustles through the terminal with long strides.
-
They have a three day break and during that time, YN isnât even thinking about Noah and his new engagement that originally had her so torn up in the first place.
All she could think about was Harry.
She had a wishful thinking that the time off would heal the wounds and theyâd be back to normal but she knew that wasnât the case when Harry put her again on the back crew.
She did not see him throughout the flight once again and stayed behind while the stewardess got off the aircraft when they landed which meant YN knew she wasnât going to see him.
He makes a habit of this for the next three flights as well before YN canât take it anymore, knowing that heâs actively avoiding her because sheâd hurt his feelings.
He didnât come to the hotel bar, he didnât meet her in the hallway for their ice run, and it was more devastating than YN though which made her come to the frightening revelation that she might have a crush on the man sheâd been mostly enemies with for over six months now.
She missed interacting with him, she missed fighting with him.
She missed the way his jaw clenched when she made him irritated, the way he looked like he wanted to reach out and manhandle her when she purposely ignored him when he called for her on flights and he had to come out of the pit, or the way he would squeeze her wrist lightly sometimes as a thank you when she would bring him a drink.
YN didnât want to admit to herself that she felt something, maybe it wasnât full blown feelings but just a smidge of fondness for the grumpy bastard.
And maybe part of it was that she felt special, Harry didnât soften for anyone else but her and even though she didnât tell her friends about it - she knew they were suspicious that YN was constantly on pit duty or that she hasnât gotten fired after how sassy she can be to her captain.
After the fourth flight of no sign of communication, YN decides that she needs to take matters into her own hands because she didnât know what she wanted with Harry but she didnât expect it to suck this much when he didnât engage with her.
Theyâre in Milan and when Harry doesnât show up at the hotel bar, well YN wasnât expecting him to at this point, and she needed to figure out what hotel room he was in.
Sheâd normally never be so deceptive but she was desperate, she walks straight up to the front desk and tells a bold-face lie to the young receptionist.
âMy boss left his phone at the bar,â YN lies, flashing her own phone quickly, âI completely forgot what room he said he was in. Would you be able to tell me?â
The girl doesnât think anything of it as she looks up the information, letting YN know what room and YN is thanking her before walking determinedly to the elevators.
Itâs late by this point, nearing eleven and she was praying that he wasnât asleep as she stepped up to his door, her heart was pounding out of her chest at the mere thought of being rejected.
It takes a good three minutes before she finally musters up the courage to knock on the door a few times - god, she didnât even know what she wanted to say to him.
Thereâs a bit of rustling behind the door, YN wonders if heâs going to open it - thereâs no peephole on these ones and her breathing freezes when he swings open the door.
He was in a pair of gray joggers that were low on his hips, the band of his underwear peeking over but the main thing was that he was shirtless and he had tattoos everywhere.
Her brain couldnât tell if it wanted to focus on memorizing the black ink on his skin or the definition of his stomach, a trail of sparse hair leading from his belly button into his underwear.
Harry doesnât give anything away from his face, blunt and cold, âCan I help you?â
âI want to say Iâm sorry,â YN decides that is the best place to start, âYou were kind to me that night and before that even, it wasnât right over me to insinuate you were doing it for an inappropriate reason.â
âI donât need a fucking apology, I donât care,â Harry bites out and YN knows that his guard is a hundred percent up by the way his posture is uncomfortable and defensive.
âYou do care,â YN replies surely, âIf it hadnât bothered you, you wouldnât have been ignoring me for the three weeks. I hurt your feelings and Iâm sorry because it wasnât my intention.â
Harry doesnât deny it again but he doesnât admit to it either, instead he grits out, âIt doesnât matter either way.â
âIt matters to me,â YN argues back, now getting defensive.
âIt shouldn't,â Harryâs voice is back to being louder, firmer.
YN bit her lip for a moment, deciding on how vulnerable she felt like being with the man who showed absolutely none himself, âIâve missed you these past weeks. I miss fighting with you on the flights, I miss our nightly ice machine walks, and you giving me a hard time in the staff room before takeoff.â
Harryâs lips twitch before heâs pulling them in a tight line, âI accept your apology.â
âAre you done ignoring me?â YN presses because this doesnât feel resolved and sheâs never had the urge to want to touch someone so much.
âFor now,â Harryâs lips barely tilt into a smile.
Itâs quiet between the two for a long pause, staring at each other, and YN doesnât know what she wants but she feels like sheâs just standing there like an idiot, âWell, goodnight. I just wanted to make sure we were on the same page.â
Harryâs eyes dart back up to hers, she realizes that heâd been checking her out, and he doesnât show any shame in being caught before nodding, âWe are. Goodnight.â
YN turns towards her room, the door closing softly behind her but she pauses after a few steps because sheâs never been adventurous, sheâs never been bold, and she might be making a mistake but fuck, she has to just try.
Sheâs retracing her steps, knocking on the door harshly, and it was like Harry hadnât gone back further into the room yet because he opens it up quickly.
They donât say anything before YN steps forward, heart pounding in her ears, and leans up - pressing their lips together and letting her hand rest on his cheek.
It flips a switch in him because heâs pulling her into his room, shutting and locking the door before walking her right into the entryway wall - his lips were persistent and taking over as he coaxes her mouth open to lick into it.
He knocks her hand away from his face but only so he can take hers between his hands, cupping her jaw on each side tightly as he moves her head how he wants to deepen the kiss.
YNâs never been kissed like this in her life, sheâd never been more aroused either.
Harry presses his hips forward until their pelvises are pressed together, he wants her to feel how hard heâs getting as pressed against her and bites at her bottom lip.
YN whines at that, her hands coming up to roam over his chest, it was so defined and muscular, not what she was used to - Harry was hard and firm where Noah had been soft and plusher.
When she thumb brushes over his nipple, his pec twitches and she has to do it a few more times until she gets her fill.
He wasnât shy when he sucked on her tongue, licked at the roof of her mouth, and made her feel like he wanted to feel every single part of her as he moved down to the hem of her shirt.
He pulls back with his lips a delicious bubblegum pink, swollen and shiny from their spit, âWhat do you want? Do you want me to stop?â
Thatâs the last thing she wants.
YN shakes her head, âDonât want to stop, please.â
Harry smiles at her, itâs a softer expression than sheâs ever seen from him and he leans forward, nuzzling her cheek for a moment before dragging her in for another long kiss.
âCan I undress you then, pup?â Harry murmurs against her lips as he starts to bring up the bottom of her shift but slowly enough that if she told him no, he would stop.
âPlease, just want you,â YN agrees breathlessly when she tries to move to the button of her jeans, Harry knocks her hand away with an annoyed grunt and glare.
âLet me do everything, I just want you to enjoy it. Donât worry, youâll get all of me. Iâll give you anything you fuckinâ want,â Harry tells her as he sheds her top, then bra.
He looks torn for a second like he canât decide whether he wants to play with her chest or continue until sheâs fully bare but he decides against the latter, cursing as he pulls down her pants, âKnew youâd have the cutest tits.â
âYouâve thought about this?â YN questions as he moves to discard her underwear.
âOf course I fucking have, itâs all Iâve thought about for the past month. No, I wasnât doing any of those things to get in your pants but it didnât mean I didnât want to fuck you,â Harryâs voice is getting deeper and raspier as heâs gets more and more turned on, âOn the bed.â
Noahâs the only guy that YNâs ever been with.
It was uncomfortable to have such a devastatingly attractive man standing in front of her when she didnât feel anywhere as sexy as him.
The worry only stays for a moment because when sheâs spread out in the middle of his bed, heâs tracing every inch of her skin, and moans loudly as he moves to squeeze himself once, âI think this is the prettiest thing Iâve ever seen. God, youâre like a little angel, arenât you?â
âCome here,â YN whimpers, reaching out for him because she needs to touch him and he obliges eagerly, heâs tugging off his joggers but keeping his underwear on as he crawls over the bed and on top of her.
Harry finds her lips again, dropping his hips to grind against her center, and it feels so fucking good, just this contact through two layers of clothing and it all like a new experience to her - she never felt this with Noah.
Harryâs mouth moves but heâs not just kissing, heâs licking at her, sucking, and biting all over her jawline then neck until he gets to her chest where he lets a pleased hum when he cups them.
âPuppy, how are you this perfect, hm?â Harry coos as he leans down to graze his teeth against her hard nipple, âPretty little thing coming to my room, begging for me to touch her, and then you show off this body? Maybe I should ignore you more often.â
YN turns her head and bites meanly at his hand which makes him chuckle and kiss the curve of her breast in apology before heâs wrapping his lips around one, fingers coming to pinch and roll the other one.
âFuck,â YN gasps because he definetly knows how to use his mouth and her back arches involuntarily, pressing herself further into him, and trying to grind her hips up against where heâs hard, wishing he could slip between her folds like this.
Harry leaves them wet and hard as his lips continue down the center of sternum, down on her belly and sheâd never thought it would feel good to have someone nip and suck at her plush but it did.
When he starts to move even further down, closer to her pubic bone, she freezes which Harry can tell right away by the hand on his shoulder tightens and her legs still from where they were restless.
âWhatâs wrong? Do you want to stop?â Harry asks with concern as he sits up more on his elbows to make eye contact with her - she didnât know how he managed to look so cute and so obscene at the same time with worried eyes and puffy lips.
âYou-I just,â YN stutters and she wants to smack herself for being an idiot because she should have known that it would lead like this but softly, she says, âYou donât have toâŚyou know, do that.â
âDo what?â Harry replies with confusion, his fingers were still tracing mindless patterns on her tummy, thumb smoothing at the skin.
YN groans in embarrassment, she could feel her face getting hot, âYou knowâŚIâm just saying you donât have toâŚ,â Her eyes dart down to her lower half so that maybe he gets the hint.
âWhat? Eat your cunt?â Harry clarifies and of course heâd be this fucking crass in bed, she shouldnât have expected anything less, âDo you not want me to? If you donât want me to, I don't have to.â
âItâs not that,â YN wants to crawl into a hole and die.
âYouâre acting like it would be a chore to me. I am one hundred percent sure that Iâll get just as much pleasure from tasting you on my tongue, getting my face in your perfect little cunt. Now whatâs the issue?â
âYouâre going to laugh,â YN mutters and she wishes she would have just kept her stupid mouth shut at this point.
âTell me now,â Heâs gone demanding again, his fingers pressing harder into her skin now.
âIâve just never had it done to me before,â She admits finally, flopping back onto the bed and throwing an arm over her eyes to hide the absolute embarrassment of it all.
Harry crawls back up on top of her, forcefully moving her arm until theyâre making eye contact, âI thought you were in a relationship for six years?â
âI was,â YN sighs as she curls her hand around his neck, âHe said that men didnât really do that often and he told me that he didnât want to put his mouth on me and I never wanted to make him uncomfortable so we never did that.â
âYour ex is a selfish little prick,â Harry rasps against her lips, his hand moving down until he has his thumb pressed snug up against her clit which makes her twitch, âYou get this excited from my thumb? You better not tell me he didnât give you fingers either.â
âHe didnât want to do that either,â YN mewls when he starts a slow circular motion on her nerves.
âIf it was possible, Iâd have my mouth on your cunt and you riding my fingers every fucking day of the week,â Harry rumbles as he moves back down her body, âHeâs a fucking dickhead who didnât deserve you for a million different reasons. Do you want me to or no? I will understand either way.â
âWant it, Harry. I want it,â YN nearly slurs with how fucking turned on she is, her hips squirming again, and Harry gives her a dazzling fucking smile as he scotches down the bed.
Heâs shouldering her thighs apart even further before heâs gripping the meat of one to keep her knee crooked and open as he groans like heâs getting pleasure from simply looking at her.
âGod, I donât think Iâm going to survive this. Iâve never seen something this breathtaking before,â Harry says as he thumbs her folds apart, admiring her for another moment before heâs ducking down to bury his tongue tight up against her clit.
And holy shit.
She didnât realize that this was what she had been missing.
Her legs try to close around his head but he keeps them spread and his other hand comes down the rest around her middle to keep her hips down.
He knows exactly what to do as he laps fat strokes of his tongue up from her core to her clit, over and over while YN is still relentlessly is trying to grind her hips up.
Harry pulls back which makes YN whine but he simply says, âShould have known what a brat youâd be in bed with how you are at work. Stay still now and let me do what I want to you. I promise itâll feel good, baby.â
And his voice is so strict, demanding that she does finally relax into his hold which he rewards with fucking his tongue into her.
âMâclose, Harry. Feels sâgood,â YN moans as her stomach clenches.
âCome on, pup,â Harry coos against her, âGive me what Iâve earned, yeah?â
Sheâs almost disappointed she feels her orgasm coming because she doesnât want to be over but Harryâs mouth is practiced and self-assured, he keeps the same pace throughout her orgasm which makes it longer by a few seconds.
YN melts into the mattress, body feeling loose and tingly as she comes down for her high, and her brows furrow when she sees Harry push down his briefs and begin to stroke himself with intent.
YN weakly kicks his thigh with a pout, âDonât.â
Harry doesnât stop but he slows down which gives YN a look at just how well endowed he is and to no surprise, mouth-wateringly beautiful.
âDonât get myself off?â
âFuck me,â YN breathes out, surprising herself with her boldness.
Harryâs hand stops, âYeah? Youâd let me get you on my cock, puppy? I donât know what Iâve done to deserve you.â
AndâŚ.
YN wants to preen at the compliment, after feeling like she didnât deserve anything to hear Harry say that made her stomach flutter even if it was just dirty talk.
âHow do you want it?â Harry asks as he comes closer again, ducking down to kiss at her knees, thighs, and he peppers kisses over her mound which feels wildly more intimate than anything sheâd ever done with Noah.
âHowever you want,â YN murmurs shyly because her only experience is Noah and they had a vanilla sex life to say the least, a whole lot of doggy and her riding him so he didnât have to do any work.
Harry laughs at that, lips vibrating against her belly, âIâll take you anyway youâll let me. What do you like most? What makes you come hard?â
YN doesnât have an answer to this because sheâs never had an orgasm from penetrative sex before without her own fingers rushing to get her there so he doesnât finish first and leave her hanging.
Harry is obviously experienced and so it doesnât make her proud to have to feel inexperienced at this moment.
âShut the fuck up,â Harry huffs out even though she didnât say anything, he takes a moment to nip at her hip, âYouâre telling me this fucker never got you off? Please tell me this is a joke.â
YN tries to cover her face again but he wraps his hands around her wrist and pulls them away, âThis is so embarrassing.â
âIt is,â Harry agrees easily, âFor him. Canât believe you were with him for six years and he couldnât even make you come. Youâre telling me she was neglected this whole time,â Harry frowns as his thumb comes back to her clit, âShould be a crime.â
âI mean I did get off but I had toâŚ.get myself there,â YN starts to wiggle again, wanting to chase the friction from his movement.
âIâd love to watch you do that sometime but tonight, youâre not going to have to lift a finger,â Harry tells her confidently before heâs positioning himself above her, lips brushing hers but not quite kiss as he lines himself up and she wraps her legs around his narrow waist, âI like this position. I want to see how gorgeous you are when you come.â
YN brings a hand up to his curls, knotting her fingers in the strands, and brings his lips fully against hers as he pushes in, it doesnât hurt but it definitely takes a minute to adjust as Harry was much more blessed in the department than Noah was and she hadnât had sex for over six months.
âWait wait,â YN pants out, pulling back, âI -Iâm on birth control but are you clean?â
Harry smirks at her like sheâs asked something funny, âIâm clean. I got tested after my last partner.â
âMe too,â YN replies, relieved that they donât have to stop.
Harry resumes kissing her but when heâs finally all the way in, his breathing stutters and he lets out a low whine that makes YN throb - like she felt so good to him that he couldnât stand it.
âHarry, you feel so good,â YN mewls as he starts a slow but powerful rhythm, she was turned on to the point where she could hear it as he thrusted in and out.
âYouâre the best thing Iâve ever felt, pup,â Harry praises and she doesnât know whether itâs just the dirty talk, it most likely is but it still makes her feel empowered, sexy.
It becomes to much when he starts to pick up the pace to continue kissing, every other breathe out of YNâs mouth was a moan and he moves down to wrap his lips around her nipple and his hands came under her bum - positioning her more upwards so her backside was off the bed and he could slide in perfectly.
The change in position made him hit a spot sheâd only heard about in her body, on every odd motion he would nudge it, and she was going to come again without any stimulation on her clit.
âHa-Harry,â YN moans louder than sheâs ever been and he pulls back from her breasts as heâs staring at her now, eyes studying her face.
âOh baby, are you close fâme? Am I doing a good job?â Harryâs voice isnât as steady as before either, there was a bead of sweat on his temple, and his chest was pink with arousal.
âYeah, Iâm close-â YN doesnât even get to finish her sentence before sheâs squeezing around him, shaking as he keeps his pace to work her through it, and sheâs a little dazed that she misses when Harry stills inside her - letting out his own filthy noises and praises as he comes down too.
YN didnât know what to expect but it wasnât for Harry to collapse his full weight on top of her and nuzzle his face into the crook of her neck for a moment, kissing her pulse point before rolling off.
She doesnât want to assume that she can sleep here, she still needs to take off her makeup and she doesnât have pajamas, and she feels anxiety creeping in which makes her get off the bed.
Harry lays on his back, one arm above his head, stomach flexing as he catches his breath, unashamed as he lays on full display because he has to know how beautiful he is.
âWhere are you going?â Harry frowns as he watches her gather her scattered clothes.
âUmâŚback to my room? I have to take off my makeup, change,â And she didnât want to mention showering because she wasnât going to sleep after he'd come inside her.
âYou donât have to, I donât want you to think that Iâm kicking you out,â Harry sits up more, reaching for his briefs before his joggers and standing up to go over to his luggage to rummage for a shirt, âLet me walk you back at least.â
âWalk of shame,â YN half-jokes as she pulls her top over her head, bra crumpled in her hand because she didnât feel like putting it back on.
âThereâs was nothing shameful about how fucking well you took it,â Harry gives her a cheeky smile as he grabs his keycard, her room was only a few doors down.
When she unlocks her door, she turns around with her hand on the handle, and doesnât know what to say but Harryâs leaning down to kiss her softly this time, âGoodnight.â
âGoodnight, Harry.â
And when YN steps inside her room, closing the door behind her, she knows sheâs royally screwed because that was the best sex of her life and now she knows for sure she has a fat fucking crush on Harry.
-
The first month after their original hookup was filled with more sex, it wasnât every night but at least every other time they had to stay in a hotel - Harry would find his way into YNâs room and theyâd have amazing sex each time.
He had her constantly on pit crew and they still bickered back and forth but it wasnât as heated and it turned more into teasing than actual fights anymore which YN surprisingly didnât mind.
YN felt like sheâd gotten to know just bare minimum about Harry while sheâd be pouring her heart out when the right moment hit, and he didnât stay the night but heâd hang around for a bit before leaving her room.
It was also the month that YN realized that she didnât just like vanilla sex and Harry had made her realize that very quickly because before him, sheâd never had sex anywhere but in bed and a few times in a shower.
It had been an evening flight out, their flight had got delayed due to a gnarly thunderstorm which meant they would be stranded at the airport for another three hours before their plane came in.
Harry never spent time in the employee lounge, pilots had their own area which was rumored to be substantially nicer than the one that YN was currently sitting in.
They still have two hours until takeoff when she receives a text from Harry.
Harry: Come to the pilotâs lounge. Third floor near gate b32.
YNâs heart rate spikes as she gathers her luggage, her friends looking at her curiously, âI think Iâm going to walk around a bit, maybe find a new book to read.â
âWant us to come?â Elaina volunteers but doesnât seem eager to move from where sheâs splayed on a overstuffed chair while playing Candy Crush.
âI think Iâll be fine,â YN replies as she heads out the door, it was actually good luck that all three of her friends appeared to be in a lazy mood because usually at least one of them would want to tag along with her.
YN knows other staff are not prohibited in the pilots lounge and so sheâs nervous as she finds the long hallway that leads to the tucked away space that heâs referring to.
Heâs waiting outside the door with his normal unreadable expression, his uniform perfectly fitted and pressed - the thrill of her being able to take it off of him makes her start to get wet without him even doing anything.
âIâm not supposed to be here,â YN tells him even though itâs obvious.
That makes Harry crack a grin, a wolfish tilt to his lips, âIâll sneak you in.â
Harry opens the door with a special keycard, guiding YN into the lounge, itâs empty in here but itâs a million times nicer than the one that sheâs used to with luxurious comfy seats, a pristine kitchen, and big flat screen televisions.
Harry moves to hold her wrist, tugging her along until theyâre in the back corner, and Harryâs pushes open another door - to a single stall bathroom that looked like it could be out of a movie with shining tile floors and floral wallpaper.
âHarry,â YN warns because she knows with this is going and she doesnât want to get in trouble.
âItâs fine, pup. Thereâs no one in here,â Harry soothes as he locks the door, he is predatory as he stalks towards her, his eyes dark and his movements slow but precise.
âSomeone could come in at anytime,â YN points out desperately, she wants to do this but she wants to be assured that thereâs no way that theyâre going to get caught, even though he canât guarantee that.
âBetter keep your pretty noises to yourself then,â Harry rasps, YN has noticed how much scratchier and deeper his voice gets when heâs turned on, itâs unfairly hot.
She doesnât have time to reply because heâs picking her up from under her bum and seating her on the sink countertop, his mouth moving to hers, and bringing her into a kiss thatâs already filled with desire.
YN is nervous, sheâs knows itâs dumb, and she doesnât want Harry to make fun of her because of it but sheâs never had sex somewhere thisâŚ.risky and this is all so new.
Harry can tell by the way sheâs kissing, distracted and in her own mind which makes him pull back, his thumb coming to rub at her bottom lip, pulling it down a bit.
âDo you not want to?â Harry checks as he watches her face, âWe donât have to, baby. We can wait until we get to the hotel. Itâs okay with me either way. I should have check-â
YN cuts his off with another kiss before she pulls back, fingers coming to graze along the collar of his uniform, dipping underneath and caressing the skin as much as she could.
âI want to. Iâm just nervous, Iâve never had sex anywhere but in a house,â YNâs face is heating with embarassment, admitting how fucking vanilla she is to someone who obviously isnât.
Harryâs smile is nearly fond, âTell me if you want to stop at any point, okay? Mâgoing to show you that you deserve to be fucked whenever and wherever you want. I donât know how your ex never did it outside the house. I thinking about fucking you everywhere, the hotel pool, over the edge of the bar, on the balcony.â
YNâs thighs clench and she presses their lips together to shut him up because sometimes his dirty talk is so sincere and downright filthy that sheâll combust if she hears anymore of it.
They donât get caught but fuck it gets YN addicted because itâs not the only time it happens.
-
The second month, things had evolved even more.
Harry started saying that he was much too tired to walk back to his hotel room that was right down the hall and YN never kicked him out, he started staying after every time they hooked up.
YN would ask about Harryâs life outside of work but he really never divulged much which made YN remember each time that this was simply casual for him - there was no interest in a relationship and he didnât like her like that, didnât want to get to know her or open up about himself.
It made things harder, when he would kiss her so sweetly and tell her every time that sheâs the best heâs ever had, it was hard to comprehend that he didn't have feelings for her either.
Especially on nights where he didnât even get off.
He was too exhausted from a long flight but YN wasnât, how heâd eat her out or give her his fingers as he kissed her softly, goading her sweetly to come so they could go to sleep.
Heâd do nice things outside of the bedroom too.
On days where they didnât have to be at the airport until noon, Harry would order breakfast to her room, he had arranged a massage for her, and then once a spa day when they had a day off in Toronto.
They still hadnât hung out without having sex until almost three months into their casual arrangement.
YN didnât feel good when they landed in London.
When sheâd gone to her hotel room, sheâd thrown up everything sheâd eaten that day, and it felt like sheâd been hit by a truck as she showered before laying in bed.
She hadnât gotten sick again but she could tell that something sheâd eaten had upset her stomach.
Then around ten, thereâs a knock at her door.
YN groans because her body protests when she pulls herself off the bed to open the door - just in a big shirt and underwear because she already knows who it is.
Harry steps into the room, going to cup her jaw, and lean in for a kiss when she pulls back much to his displeasure - a frown gracing his face as she denies him.
âI donât feel good, Iâm sorry. I donât feel like having sex,â YN tells him, hoping he doesn't mind too much - she remembers how upset Noah would get if she turned him down, âMaybe tomorrow morning but I got sick-â
Harryâs frown deepens as he guides her towards the bed, âWeâre not doing anything if you donât feel good. Donât worry about the next time we are going to. Weâll find time when youâre feeling better.â
âButâŚâ YN hates that she feels like she has to ask, âAre you mad?â
Harry looks a bit devastated at that question, his voice soft as he pats her bum as she crawls back in bed, âWhy on earth would I be mad, pup?â
Itâs the first time heâs called her that outside of sex.
Heâd call her other things like baby, darling but that nickname hadnât been spoken before in this context.
âBecause I donât want to have sex tonight,â YN wants to look away but he holds her gaze so intently.
Something clicks and Harry realizes that this insecurity must come from her last relationship.
âI wouldnât be mad even if you never wanted to have sex with me again,â Harry assures her and he sounds sincere as he sits next to her, âI fucking love doing that with you but if you didnât want to tonight or whenever, Iâd never be upset. I respect whatever you want to do.â
âThank you,â YN smiles weakly, she wanted a cuddle and it didnât feel like she could because they didnât do just that.
Harry nods, squeezing her thigh before standing back up.
âHave a goodnight,â YN tells him as he turns his back to her.
He whips around with confusion written all over his face, âYou want me to leave?â
YN is just as confused, âI thought thatâs what you were doing.â
âI was just going to turn off the floor lamp,â Harry nods to the light still on in the far corner, âBut I can go if you donât want me here-â
âNo!â YN says too quickly, âI want you to stay. I just, we havenât done this without you knowâŚhaving sex.â
Harryâs face relaxes as he realizes heâs not being kicked out but he does move to turn off the lamp before stripping down to his briefs, he doesnât respond to her last sentence but instead says, âPut on a movie.â
She does and he brings her into his chest and now that becomes a thing.
-
By the middle of the third month, they spend every night together when theyâre traveling, and even when theyâre not having sex, they go to bed cuddled up at night.
Harry doesnât even bother with false pretenses and stops putting his suitcase in his own hotel room.
YN still finds frustration in how closed off Harry is, heâs attentive and at least acts interested when YN talks about herself and her life but he rarely gives anything out.
Sheâd been dying to know about his ex-wife, if what his friends said was true and he was married but he doesnât ever mention an ex-wife or anything much for that matter.
It starts to feel like YN wants this more than him which isnât fair to him because he never said that he wanted a relationship with her and she knew she fucked up by falling for him.
One night though, something changes and it begins to give YN hope that this wasnât all in her head that he might like her too.
They had gone out onto the balcony of the hotel, they were in Madrid, and it overlooked the city as they laid on the lounge chair, YN in between his legs, and the warm air had a light breeze.
âIâve never been to the Maldives, never been lucky enough to get a flight there,â YN hums as she plays with the rings on his finger, his hand resting on her belly, âBut Iâd say thatâs my dream vacation. Always have wanted to go. Have you flown there?â
âI havenât had a flight there, working wise. I had my honeymoon there,â Harry replies and his voice is tighter, more vulnerable than it was just mere minutes ago.
âOh,â YN doesnât know what to say.
âIt was beautiful. The water was amazing, it just looked like you were living in a magazine,â Harry continues but he sounds strained like itâs hard for him to even talk about it.
âThatâs why I want to go,â YN keeps her voice upbeat, giving him the opportunity not to elaborate if he didnât want to.
âI was married for five years,â Harry tells her with hesitation.
âWhen did you get divorced?â YN canât help but ask, hoping it doesnât make him close back up.
âWe didnât,â Harry says but thereâs no sharp edge to his voice, âShe passed away.â
YNâs heart absolutely sinks into her stomach.
âI am so sorry to hear that, Harry,â YN squeezed his hand, bringing it up so she could kiss his palm and he allowed it.
âWeâŚwe were separated at the time and had filed for divorce,â Harry continues with a shudder, âWe hadnât been getting along for the past two years of our marriage. We got married right out of college, weâd only known each other for six months before we eloped. We were stupid and young. Once the honeymoon phase was over, we realized we had nothing in common or even really liked each other. We tried to make it work but we couldnât.â
âIâŚuh, I didnât want to be with her anymore but I still loved her,â Harryâs voice is shaky, âNot so much as a lover but she was still my friend. IâŚIt was hard. She was in a car accident coming home from work, she was working the night shift as a nurse at the hospital. Drunk driver.â
âThatâs heartbreaking,â YN feels herself getting upset for Harry, tears falling down her cheeks at what he had to go through, she couldnât even imagine.
âDonât cry, Sâokay. Iâm okay now,â Harry soothes as he leans forward to thumb at her damp cheeks, âIâm okay. I got counseling, Iâve worked through my grief.â
âI should be comforting you, Iâm sorry,â YN apologizes but sheâs taken by surprise when he leans forward and kisses her firmly, itâs not sexually charged but thereâs so much feeling as he holds her to him.
It feels like more than just friends with benefits.
It has to be.
-
Harry was on a rampage at work, YN had never seen him so infuriated in her life as they were up in the air, five hours into a eleven hour flight, and he was more pissed than even his worst fight with YN.
The ground crew hadnât fully fueled the aircraft, they werenât going to make it to their destination on what they had left to work with, it wasnât something that often occurred but it has happened occasionally in the past.
However, it meant that Harry had to work with staff on the ground to figure out what airport he needed to land out to refuel while figuring out the logistics of changing the course and time of the flight.
He hadnât lashed out at YN but heâd chewed out nearly everyone else on the crew at least once but poor Perry got shouted out at least three times and she had cried two of them.
At the end of the day, the eleven hour flight took nearly fourteen, and by the time YN and Harry were in their bed, it was late, and they were both tired as they turned on a movie.
YN isnât sure about how the topic went to their previous relationships but she answered anything Harry had asked about Noah, YN felt like she could do the same now that he had opened up about his wife.
âWhat did your family think of you getting eloped six months after meeting each other?â YN was curious, figured it wasnât a crazy question to ask at all but Harry visibly tenses.
âI donât want to talk about that,â Harry throws up his guard instantly and usually YN is understanding but quite frankly, it is starting to piss her off now.
âOf course you donât,â YN scoffs with an annoyed edge.
âWhat the fuck is that supposed to mean?â Harry shoots back, sitting up straighter and looking over at her.
âThat you will never open up to me! I share everything about me with you and you give me absolutely nothing. You shared about your wife that one night but beside that, youâve never let me get to know you!â YN points out as she sits up too, anger rising in her chest.
An expression that YN doesnât recognize flashes across his face for a moment before heâs covering it with a scowl, âI donât have to share anything with you, YN. Weâre not dating, weâre not in a relationship. It shouldnât fucking matter if you know me.â
And ouch, thatâŚ.that really fucking hurt.
YN could feel herself getting more upset than sheâs been in a long time because this was her getting rejected officially.
Because if this is all he wants, YN doesnât know if she can be okay with that anymore.
âGet the fuck out of my room,â YN finds herself huffing out, ripping the covers off of her legs and standing up - she feels a wave of naseous run over her as she bolts to the bathroom, slamming the door and doubling over the toilet.
Harry opens the door, moving to pull her hair away from her face, and rubs at her back as she heaves into the bowl, moaning at how gross she feels before flushing - he takes a step back from her.
âThanks,â YN mutters as he gives her room to walk over to the sink to brush her teeth, âMy stomachâs been sensitive to food lately while weâve been on trips.â
âI know,â Harry replies simply because this isnât the first time heâd held her hair as she got sick.
âI donât think we should do this anymore,â YN tells him and at the same time, her heart is completely ripping into two.
This is the moment she realizes how irrevocably in love with Harry that she is and sheâs fallen so hard that it feels impossible to dig herself out of the hole sheâs dug.
If she couldnât have all of him then she knew she was hurting herself in the long run because sheâd never get what she wanted from him and sex just wasnât enough for her even if it was for him.
âYN,â Harryâs voice is smaller than itâs ever sounded, shocked by what sheâs saying and his eyes are wide, pleading, âDonât. Iâm sorry I snapped at you. I shouldn't have said those things. Today hasnât been a good day, I didnât -â
âDonât apologize, Harry,â YN shakes her head, voice steady and firm,âItâs okay. Iâm not mad at you. I justâŚthis isnât working for me. I canât just be a hookup for you, I donât want that. I want to know you, I want more than what you want. Itâs just better if we stop while weâre ahead.â
âYN, please just-â Harry sounds like heâs begging but YNâs made up her mind and nothing has ever hurt more than this.
âHarry,â Her voice is stern, âPlease just leave.â
He bites his lip because he wants to argue more, he honestly looks like heâs near tears but YN doesnât know if thatâs just her imagination as he exits the bathroom to gather his clothes into his suitcase - digging around for the keycard to his own room he threw carelessly somewhere.
YN didn't sleep that night, eyes hurting from how much sheâd cried, cheeks raw from where she had continuously wiped away the traitorous tears because this hurt worse than anything sheâd ever gone through with Noah.
-
YN does exactly what Harry had done to her in the past.
She hides away before flights because her friends have told her that Harry has been coming in looking for her and she switches positions with someone else so that sheâs not in the pit.
She ignores Harry when he knocks at her hotel door one night, ignores his text messages asking for them just to talk, and lets the food he sends up from room services go cold.
Itâs only been a week since the incident but YN hasnât felt any better with her stomach issues as she settles back at home after another flight - sheâs restocking her toiletry bag for the next day when she realizes that she didnât need to refill her tampons.
YNâs heart sinks into her stomach when she realizes that she canât remember the last time that she had a period but there is absolutely no fucking way that sheâs pregnant because she was on brith control and took it regularly.
She was googling frantically the statistics of birth control not working and that the pill is ninety-one percent effective which means thereâs only a nine percent chance itâs not.
But thereâs a chance.
YN digs in her cabinets for an old test that she knew sheâd shoved somewhere after sheâd broken up with Noah and had sworn off sex, and she was shaking as she waited for the results.
Her phone chimes with a text from Harry.
Please, can we just talk?
Donât shut me out. Please.
YN, can you just give me a chance to explain myself?
Please, YN. I canât stand this. Itâs killing me. Please.
And YN ignores them, hyperventilating as her alarm sounds, and she flips the plastic stick - a digital reading across the screen and in clear bold letters, it tells her what she didnât want to fucking see.
Pregnant.
Holy fucking shit.
âNo,â YN whimpers as she blinks at it, âNo no no.â
She was responsible with her pill, how was she part of the small percentage?
It never happened with Noah, why now?
Why was it with the person who didn't want her like this?
YN feels lightheaded, stumbling to her bed, and burying herself in the covers because she doesnât know what to think or do or feel because sheâs pregnant with Harryâs baby and he doesnât even want a relationship with her.
-
YN calls off work for the next two weeks because she doesnât know what else to do, she had vacation time to use, and she couldnât face Harry right now as she figured out what she was going to do or how she was going to tell him.
Sheâs still violently sick nearly everyday, feeling worse as the days go on, when her two weeks was up - she didnât feel any better about going to work.
Harry hadnât stopped texting her, trying to call her but she couldnât even read them because it hurt too much.
YN is in love with him, she had a baby in her stomach that is half him, and he didnât want any of that.
On the day that she returns to work, theyâre going to London again.
Sheâd been having awful cramps all morning, getting sick twice in the airport bathroom, and felt like she was striking a fever as she boarded the plane.
Harry was out of the cockpit, standing right outside of it, and his eyes flash in concern when he sees YN, âAre you okay? I havenât heard from you -â
âIâm fine,â YN brushes him off, lying through her teeth as she stows her bag away before retreating to the back of the aircraft despite his eyes on her the whole time.
-
YN lets her friends convince her into going to the hotel restaurant that night despite feeling like death, the cramps hadnât stopped, her head was now pounding, and she still felt overheated.
Her food was untouched as her friends giggled and gossiped around her but suddenly she felt like she was going to pass out.
The stomach cramps turned into a sharper pain, something sheâd never felt before.
It was indescribable and she knew that she needed to go to the hospital.
And all she can think about is the baby.
That this isntâ good.
âOhâŚOh my god,â YN gasps as she pushes her chair back, âI- I need to go to the hospital.â
All three girls jerk their head with wide eyes, immediately confused and worried, Justine who was sitting next to her, âWhatâs wrong?â
âCramps, Iâm having cramps. TheyâreâŚ.fuck, theyâre bad,â YN groans as she moves her hand to her stomach, feeling like she may just double over in pain.
âDo you think that it might just be your period?â Perry asks as she begins looking for a staff member.
YN shakes her head sharply, âNo-no because I'm pregnant.â
All three girls gasp in surprise, moving into action as they flag over the waiter to call the paramedics - the pain in her stomach was starting to overwhelm her.
âCall Harry,â YN shoves her phone at Elaina, âPlease.â
âHeâll understand, YN. Donât worry about work right now,â She tries to assure her.
âElaina, call him,â YN says firmly, giving her a look, and that when all three girls register what she is implying - they try to hide the absolute shock as Elaina presses his contact information.
YN zones in and out of consciousness for a while, barely remembers when Harry arrives but heâs brushing her hair out of her face, murmuring things to her, and patting a wet rag on her forehead that someone gave him.
He clambers into the ambulance with her and she starts to come back to reality for a little while the paramedic begins to ask her questions about her health history.
She doesnât know how it didnât get communicated from her friends about what was going on but the EMT asks, âDo you have any idea why youâre having this pain?â
Harryâs hand is gripping hers tightly, heâs confused and has no idea what is going on but heâs shaking as he watches her.
âIâm-Iâm pregnant,â YN manages to spit out and squeezes her eyes shut because she doesnât want to see Harryâs reaction to that news.
His hand leaves hers.
âBaby, oh my god,â Harry gasps in surprise but heâs getting up from the seat, leaning over, and pressing kisses to her sweaty forehead, âYouâre pregnant...â
âYour baby,â YN nods as she tenses as a cramp fleets through her body, âIâm sorry, I didnât- I took my pills I promise, I donât know how-â
âSssh,â Harry soothes instantly, lips peppering kisses all over her face now as he strokes her hair, âSâokay, youâre okay. Youâre going to be okay. Iâm here and I love you so much, pup.â
YN blinks up at him blearily, âYou love me?â
Harry nods, thereâs tears in the corner of his eyes, âIâve been trying to tell you for the last weeks but you wouldnât talk to me. Of course, I fucking love you.â
âI love you too,â YN tells him but has to grit her teeth when another pain shoots through her and everything goes dark for a while.
-
YN wakes up in a hospital bed, there blinds are drawn shut and itâs dark in the room, she can tell itâs still night as there is no sun seeping through the cracks of the sills.
She feels substantially better than when she was being transported here but her side is still aching and as she blinks her eyes open, she sees Harry sitting right next to her bed with his head slumped against the edge of the mattress.
He was asleep and looked to be in the most uncomfortable position, sitting up in a chair with his back hunched at an awful angle, his one hand resting on his thigh but the other was holding tightly onto hers.
She could fully admit that her heart soared with love as she watched the man beside her sleep - it may sound creepy but she loved watching him like this because all his frown wrinkles were smoothed, he was relaxed with his puffy lips parted, his eyelashes long against his cheekbones.
Her free hand comes to his hair, carding her fingers through the curls, and lightly scratching her nails against his scalp.
It takes a minute but he finally stirs, a sharp intake of breath as he sits up with wide eyes, there was so much anxiety in his expression that YN had never seen before this night.
âPup,â Harry rasps, his voice thick from sleep but he brings her hand up to kiss the back of it, avoiding the IV, âHow long have you been awake?â
âJust now,â YN tells him and she knows, she knows she needs to ask what happened but the sinking feeling in her stomach tells her that she no longer has a baby growing in her stomach.
âI love you,â Harry breathes out quickly like heâs worried sheâll kick him out of the room, âPretty much from the beginning I think. I should have let you in, I wanted to. I justâŚif I have you that means I could lose you. Iâve been through that and I donât think I could handle it if that happened to you. I hadnât been with anyone since my wife passed. Itâs been ten years and Iâm scared.â
âI love you too,â YN whispers sincerely, leaning over slightly and Harry meets her the rest of the way to lay a gentle kiss on her lips, thumb coming to brush under her cheekbone, âThe baby..â
Harry bites his lip, jaw clenching but not from anger this time but YNâs absolutely alarmed when he starts to cry, âOur baby is healthy and stable.â
âWha-What?â YN stammers out in disbelief, she had fully prepared herself for the news that she had miscarried, âThe stomach pain, I-Youâre lying. Please, donât- I canât.â
âBaby, no,â Harry coos soothingly, standing up and leaning over her, pressing his forehead against hers, âItâs wasnât anything to do with your pregnancy. Your appendix ruptured. The baby was never at risk, theyâre okay.â
âI had appendicitis? No-not a miscarriage?â YN clarifies because she doesnât feel like sheâs awake right now, she had prepared herself for the worst news possible.
âYes, they removed your appendix. They checked on the baby. Everything is fine with you and our baby,â Harry assures her as he peppers kisses all over her face like he did the night before, âI heard their little heart beat, YN. Theyâre already growing and so strong. Fuck, Iâm so in love with them and I just found out.â
âI took my birth control everyday at the same time,â YN begins to explain as she watches Harryâs hand drift down to her stomach, there wasnât any sign yet maybe a little pudge she hadnât noticed but he still laid his hand there protectively, âI donât know why it didnât, Iâm sorry-â
âDo not ever apologize to me about this,â Harry replies firmly, his voice serious and deep as he pulls back to look at her, âOf course, this isnât what I was expecting but I want it. I want it so fucking badly. I never- I never thought I had kids after you knowâŚwhat happened.â
âI donât even know anything about you,â YN sniffles as she pulls him back down, digging her face into his shoulder for comfort as his hand comes to cup the back of her head.
âWe have about six months for you to learn every single thing about me,â Harry murmurs with a wet chuckle, âIâm done having walls up. I was trying to tell you that for the last month. I am so fucking in love with you I canât think straight. I want you to know all of me.â
âI want that too, I want you in every way,â YN presses her lips to his shoulder, tears making his shirt damp.
âYou have another night in the hospital,â Harry tells her, âFor observation. I think Iâd like to start now.â
âOkay,â She nods quietly, moving over with a wince until Harry can squeeze into the small hospital bed with her.
âI grew up in this shitty little apartment above a Chinese restaurantâŚâ Harry starts his story, YN had never heard him speak so much but for the rest of her hospital stay, aside from naps, Harry doesnât stop sharing.
And he never stops again after that.
#harry styles writing#harry styles masterlist#update#harry styles#harry styles fluff#harry styles fic rec#harry styles x y/n#harry styles x reader#harry styles x you#harry styles fanfic#harry styles fanfiction#harry styles one shot
445 notes
¡
View notes
Text
not a chance + lando norris (one shot)
In which Lando thinks he's going to win a race, to which you tell him the chances of you two fucking are as low as him winning a race - so what happens when he wins?
lando norris x fem!sainz reader tw: smut + not proof read (as usual)
masterlist - playlist
âI think this is going to be my day,â Lando tells your brother, Carlos, with a confident tone in his voice. âMaybe Iâll actually win today.â
You canât help yourself and let out a soft laugh. âAs if,â you mutter softly. You donât expect anyone to pay attention to you, let alone hear your comment, but while looking at Lando youâre quick to realize that he did hear you. He is sending you an annoyed glare, while Carlos tries to tell you without words that you should shut up. Bit too late for that now.Â
âDonât believe me babygirl?â Lando asks you. The earlier confidence in his voice has disappeared and made place for a sarcastic tone, one Lando only uses with you. âNope,â you say, making sure that youâre popping the p.Â
âIâm not doing this again,â Carlos sighs while looking at his little sister and one of his best friends. Lando and you both know what heâs talking about, but neither of you is backing away. Lando is even getting closer towards you. âIâll see you later,â Carlos continues, âhopefully after the two of you finally fixed the fucking sexual tension between you two.âÂ
Itâs not a secret that Lando and you donât like each other. You donât know how it happened, where you were once almost as close with him as Carlos, things changed between you two. Friendly conversations changed into sarcastic, mean remarks meant to hurt to other one. Meeting up when Carlos couldnât join changed into only seeing each other when Carlos dragged the both of you in the same place. Always texting with each other, sending memes towards each other eventually changed into ignoring each other on every social platform.Â
Whatever happened to cause the change between Lando and you, has never been clear to you. Sometimes you blame yourself for taking a bit more distance when Lando got his first girlfriend, but eventually it was Lando who really changed his attitude towards you. Sometimes you miss how it was before, or better said every time you see Lando you miss how it was before. Even if you were fighting your feelings for him, it was better then acting like you hate him. Of course you donât hate Lando, how could you - especially after crushing on him for the longest time.Â
Your phone vibrates in your hand, you look at the text thatâs coming in. Itâs from Carlos. When youâre done toying with Lando, Iâm at Ferrari. Saved you a seat. You should go to him now, that would be the smart thing to do. But Lando is still standing closely in front of you. Carlos believes that something else is going on between Lando and you, something thatâs according to him caused by romantic feelings, but according to you thatâs bullshit. Your crush on Lando doesnât exist anymore, right?Â
âFunny to see the girl who believed in you the most turn into one of your biggest haters,â Lando mutters annoyed. He truly feels betrayed by the way youâre talking about him and the upcoming race. He means his earlier words. Sometimes he wonders how things would be between you two if he did some things different. A lot changed when he was dating his ex girlfriend, changes he canât undo but he wants to fix them. If youâll let him.
âNot a hater,â you reply, âjust a realist.âÂ
âJust watch me babygirl,â Lando says, âIâll show you.â
âNo thanks.â
âAnd after the podium Iâll find you and show you what else I can do,â Lando continues. He almost sounds dangerous. It causes you to feel flustered. What is he talking about?Â
âThe chances of youâre winning the race are as low as the chances of us going to fuck,â you tell him as if itâs a fact, while in reality youâre not so sure about yourself.Â
âSeems like a good celebration, Iâll find you after the race,â Lando says, he has found his confidence back.Â
âYouâre crazy,â you sigh, âIâm not listening to this any longer.â
âSee you after the race babygirl,â Lando says when you walk away from him.
âYou wonât.âÂ
+++
Fuck. Did this actually happen? You donât know whether to laugh or to cry when youâre looking at Lando whoâs screaming from happiness while getting out of his car. How did he actually win todays race? What does this mean? What is going to happen now? Is Lando expecting that youâll have sex with him now? Fuck.Â
You see the way your brother is hugging with Lando, how happy he is for his friend. It makes you think about how you felt before. Every time Lando stood on the podium youâd beam with pride, you love(d) seeing him on the podium. It was you who always told Lando that he would be standing on the top step soon and that youâd be there to celebrate with him. How things changed.Â
While looking at Lando whoâs still celebrating with his team, you think back about the day things really went wrong between Lando and you. It has been months before it all crashed down, months filled up with weird tension and uncomfortable moments. Which all started when Lando got a girlfriend. You canât blame him for that, you still donât, but you just didnât like her. Maybe it was because of your crush on Lando, maybe it was because his girlfriend sensed something and made sure that Lando and you couldnât spend any time together anymore.Â
âYou donât get it Lando,â you tell him, âI never get to see you anymore, youâre always busy and donât make time for me anymore. What changed? Are you bored of me? Am I not fun enough to be your friend anymore?âÂ
âNo, thatâs not it,â Lando quickly says, âI just donât have the time anymore.â
âYou seem to have time for everyone expect for me,â you bitterly state, âIâm not stupid, I see how youâre traveling all around the world to meet up with every friend you have.â
âItâs different,â Lando defends himself.Â
âJust tell me what I did wrong,â you sigh, âsince youâre in a relationship everything changed between us.âÂ
Lando knew at that moment that he should tell you the truth. How he only agreed to his relationship so he could forget about his feelings for you, but he doesnât dare to say so. And now heâs in a relationship with a weird influencer who seems to hate you and who doesnât âallowâ him to see you anymore. He really should break up with her, but what will happen then?
âItâs just that she doesnât like you,â Lando eventually tells you, âand as her boyfriend I need to chose her side, I guess?â
âSo thatâs it? Your girlfriend, from two months, doesnât like me so you just decided to stop spending time with me, your friend from multiple years?â You ask confused. This time you donât wait for Lando to continue. âThatâs just, fuck, I donât know what to say to that. Good to know my worth,â you continue sadly.Â
After his confession which still wasnât the whole story, Lando didnât know what to say anymore. He watched how you left, but didnât follow you to make things right. Maybe itâs for the better for now. Thereâs nothing he can do for now. He has a girlfriend, he needs to forget about his feelings for you and move on.Â
Two hours later he broke up with his girlfriend, but then he was already blocked by you.Â
After Lando celebrated with his team, almost all the other drivers and everyone else who congratulated him, youâre waiting for him to get on the podium. You feel weird while watching Lando on the podium. Thereâs a part of you whoâs incredibly proud of him, a part that wants nothing more then to run over to Lando and hug him and tell him how proud you are of him. The other side of you is only thinking about what will happen next.Â
When Lando is standing on the podium, you canât stop thinking about how hot he looks. When Carlos finds his place next to you and watches Lando with you, he notices the way you keep looking at his best friend. âI really wouldnât be mad if there would happen something between Lando and you,â Carlos tells you for the millionth time. âYouâre crazy,â you reply annoyed.Â
What Carlos and you both donât notice is the way Lando is looking for you from the podium. When you look up again, you lock eyes with Lando. He sends you a wink. Fuck.Â
After the podium you walk away together with Carlos, you want nothing more then get back to the hotel and sleep. This day was confusing and long, you canât wait for it to end. Lando notices you walking away, without thinking about it he walks away from the press and starts to get towards you. He hurries and almost runs towards you. When he finally reaches you, he grabs your arm.Â
âWhat the fuck,â you mutter when you feel someone grabbing your arm. Surprised you stop walking and look behind you. You donât even know if you are surprised or not when you notice that itâs Lando.Â
âYouâre coming with me,â Lando tells you with a stern voice. Carlos looks confused at the two of you. You can only sigh. What are you going to say to this? You really donât know. Slowly you nod at Lando, confusing your brother only more. Lando is quick to say a goodbye to Carlos and starts to walk off with you.Â
+++
Lando dropped you in his drivers room. He still has media duties, but he wanted to make sure that you didnât leave in the mean time. While giving interviews and talking with everyone, his mind is focused on you. He can only hope that youâre still waiting for him.Â
In the mean time you keep thinking about what to do. Youâre stressed out because of everything thatâs happening. What will happen when Lando comes back from his interviews? Are the two of you going to talk things out and finally make it right? Or are you going to fight? Or is Lando actually for real and does he wants to fuck you?Â
Eventually the stress makes you crazy. You decide to call your brother. Who knows for how long Lando is busy, you really need to talk with someone about this and whoâs better then one of Lando his best friends? You know that your brother knows about your earlier feelings for Lando, so you can only hope that he will help you now. What if your feelings return? Or better said, what if you finally realize that they have never left?
âCarlos you really need to help me,â you start to speak when Carlos picks up.
âNo, no, you need to tell me whatâs going on between Lando and you! He left an interview to pick you up and now heâs doing interviews again? Where are you?â Carlos reacts.
âIâm in his drivers room,â you confess, âbut I donât know what will happen between us.â After that you explain to your brother what happened earlier today when he left Lando and you alone. Carlos chuckles when you tell him about Lando his bold replies.Â
âWhat do you want to happen?â Carlos asks you eventually.
âI donât know,â you say honestly.Â
âYou do know,â Carlos replies, âyouâre just not honest to yourself. But we both know that youâre still in love with Lando.â
Before you can react to those words, Lando is entering his drivers room. You can only pray that he didnât hear anything from what Carlos just said. âLandoâs here,â you tell Carlos on the phone, âIâll talk to you later.â Before hanging up you hear Carlos say something childish in the lines of âdoing it safeâ. As if Lando wants something like that to happen you think annoyed.
âWhat am I doing here Lando?â You ask.Â
âIâm getting my reward,â Lando tells you with a small smirk on his face.Â
âYour reward?â You ask confused.Â
âThe chances of you winning the race are as low as the chances of us having sex,â Lando speaks up, âRemember those words babygirl?âÂ
âWhat do you want Lando?â You ask him.Â
âYou.â
Lando his answer makes you shiver. His following movements make it only worse. Without giving it a second thought, Lando pulls you into himself. His finger is under your chin, softly lifting it up for himself. He looks you into your eyes, searching for some sort of approval before he continues with his movements. When you show him a quick nod, heâs sure about it. Lando presses his lips against yours.Â
Fuck, you canât remember the last time a kiss felt so good. Now that you think of it, a kiss probably never felt this good before. It feels like everything is finally falling into itâs place. Lando pulls you as close into himself as he can manage. Your lips donât leave his. When you feel Lando his hands on your body, a soft moan leaves your lips. Lando feels it vibrate against his own. Slowly he pulls back from you.Â
âLan,â you softly whimper when he doesnât stop looking at you.Â
âWhat is it babygirl?â He asks you. Itâs the first time in a year that the nickname feels sweet instead of sarcastic.Â
âDo something please,â you beg.Â
Lando is quick to respond to your pleas. His hands find your body. Slowly he explores your curves while he presses some soft kisses on your neck, shoulders and face in the mean time. When Lando his hands are getting lower, youâre quick to lift up your skirt for him. Lando smirks when he notices it.Â
âWhat do you want me to do?â Lando asks you.Â
âIf you can win,â you softly say, âthen you also can fuck me I guess.â
This time Lando doesnât hide his excitement anymore. He shows you an enthusiastic grin and moves away from you. Before you can complain, heâs already sitting in front of you. He takes off your skirt and starts to trace figures onto your still clothed cunt. He feels how your string is already damp.Â
âYou guess?â Lando asks you.Â
âDonât tease,â you tell him, âjust fuck me already.â
Lando removes your string from your body. He moves his head closely to your cunt and presses a soft kiss against your clit. Heâs in conflict with himself, he wants to take his time with you and show you exactly what he has to offer but he also just wants to fuck you right now until the both of you are lost for words.Â
âLan,â you whimper.
âCanât I take my time with you babygirl?â Lando asks you teasingly. In the mean time he pulls down his race suit and boxers.Â
âNext time,â you reply.
It makes Landoâs heart miss a beat. Youâre thinking about a next time? His smile gets bigger again. He pulls you closer to him and aligns his dick with your entrance. You grab his hair in the mean time and try to get Lando closer towards yourself so you can kiss him again. When Lando lets his dick enter your body, it causes you to let out a loud moan.Â
âFuck,â Lando groans, âwaited fucking four years to feel this.â
You barely hear him. Lando his words surprise you. Four years ago the two of you just met. At that time Carlos just got Lando as his new teammate. What does Lando mean with this. Before you can make things more clear for yourself, Lando continues to speak.
âAlways wanted to fuck you,â Lando grunts, âAlways thought about fucking you.â
Does this mean what you think it means?Â
âWhat about..â You start to ask. âDonât say her name,â Lando is quick to interrupt you. How does he already know that youâre talking about his ex? âOnly got with her so I could forget you,â he confesses.Â
âFuck,â you moan, you donât know but after Lando his sudden confession the sex feels even ten times better then before. âAlways wanted you to fuck me as well,â you confess.Â
That makes Lando slow down.Â
âWaited four years for you,â you continue to confess.
This time Lando stops moving inside of you.Â
âAre you serious babygirl?â Lando asks confused.Â
âYes,â you softly tell Lando, âIâve had a crush on you for the longest time.â
Lando grins, âThatâs good,â he says, âReally good.â He picks up his earlier pace and continues to fuck you. When the both of you reached your high, Lando carefully pulls back. He pulls you onto himself. Holding you as close towards himself as he can.Â
âFour years right?â You ask Lando.Â
âFour years,â he replies with a nod.Â
The both of you let out a soft laugh. Suddenly nobody cares about what happened between you two in the last year. Sure, you will talk about it some time. But not now. Lando presses a kiss against your cheek.Â
âDid you really think I couldnât get a win today?â Lando suddenly asks you.Â
âLan,â you softly say, âI always believed you could get a win everywhere.âÂ
âThatâs a girlfriend thing to say,â Lando jokes, âAre you my girlfriend now?â
âDo you want me to be?âÂ
âThereâs nothing more I want to,â Lando confesses.
âThen I guess Iâm your girlfriend,â you laugh. Lando kisses you again.Â
âLetâs grab dinner with your brother,â Lando suggests, âand after that I want you in my hotel room so I can take my time with you.âÂ
âDeal.â
y/n: want to get dinner with me and my boyfriend?
y/n: heâs a race winner ;)
carlos: finally
#lando norris#lando norris x reader#lando norris x y/n#lando norris fanfiction#lando norris imagine#ln4#formula one#f1#lando norris smut#lando norris imagines
2K notes
¡
View notes